Selected quad for the lemma: judgement_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
judgement_n bishop_n church_n presbyter_n 1,645 5 10.1981 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A07192 Of the consecration of the bishops in the Church of England with their succession, iurisdiction, and other things incident to their calling: as also of the ordination of priests and deacons. Fiue bookes: wherein they are cleared from the slanders and odious imputations of Bellarmine, Sanders, Bristow, Harding, Allen, Stapleton, Parsons, Kellison, Eudemon, Becanus, and other romanists: and iustified to containe nothing contrary to the Scriptures, councels, Fathers, or approued examples of primitiue antiquitie. By Francis Mason, Batchelour of Diuinitie, and sometimes fellow of Merton Colledge in Oxeford. Mason, Francis, 1566?-1621. 1613 (1613) STC 17597; ESTC S114294 344,300 282

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

immodest_o then_o ever_o do_v any_o other_o heretic_n and_o other_o 60._o reverend_a divine_n use_v almost_o the_o same_o word_n 2._o gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_n say_v certain_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o in_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n there_o be_v lawful_a ecclesiastical_a minister_n as_o be_v right_o ordain_v of_o true_a bishop_n but_o in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o sectary_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o there_o be_v not_o lawful_a minister_n for_o they_o be_v not_o ordain_v of_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o have_v no_o church_n see_v that_o a_o church_n can_v want_v lawful_a minister_n likewise_o father_n 3_o turrian_n say_v that_o the_o donatist_n and_o luciferian_o have_v after_o a_o sort_n some_o fashion_n of_o a_o church_n because_o they_o have_v bishop_n though_o schismatical_a and_o other_o minister_n who_o bishop_n ordain_v but_o the_o protestant_n have_v no_o form_n or_o fashion_n of_o a_o church_n at_o all_o because_o they_o have_v no_o minister_n at_o all_o of_o the_o church_n or_o word_n but_o mere_a lay_v man_n 33._o mattheus_fw-la lanoius_fw-la have_v prove_v that_o only_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v lawful_a vocation_n and_o schulting●bid●●_n d._n tyreus_n have_v write_v of_o the_o false_a call_n of_o the_o new_a minister_n but_o these_o be_v sufficient_a and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o holy_a church_n may_v appear_v by_o the_o practice_n for_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o rich._n bristol_n your_o minister_n return_v to_o we_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o minister_v unless_o they_o take_v our_o order_n which_o show_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o lawful_a minister_n but_o mere_o layman_n orthod._n our_o ministry_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o bless_a book_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o holy_a and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v those_o that_o have_v instruct_v many_o unto_o righteousness_n shall_v shine_v as_o the_o star_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o but_o how_o prove_v you_o that_o our_o minister_n be_v no_o lawful_a minister_n phil._n can_v there_o be_v a_o lawful_a minister_n without_o a_o lawful_a call_n 2._o orthod._n it_o be_v impossible_a 4._o for_o no_o man_n take_v this_o honour_n unto_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o be_v aaron_n it_o be_v write_v of_o john_n the_o baptist_n 6._o there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v from_o god_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o preach_v before_o they_o have_v this_o warrant_n 16._o behold_v i_o send_v you_o and_o s._n paul_n say_v 15._o how_o can_v they_o preach_v except_o they_o be_v send_v and_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o prophet_n 25._o jeremie_n reprove_v such_o as_o run_v before_o they_o be_v send_v therefore_o though_o a_o man_n be_v wise_a than_o solomon_n and_o daniel_n he_o must_v expect_v till_o the_o lord_n send_v he_o he_o that_o teach_v without_o a_o calling_n how_o can_v he_o hope_v that_o christ_n will_v be_v with_o he_o this_o be_v a_o order_n say_v 5._o beza_n appoint_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o observe_v inviolable_o by_o all_o true_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o no_o man_n may_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n unless_o he_o be_v call_v phil._n if_o there_o can_v be_v a_o lawful_a minister_n without_o a_o lawful_a call_n than_o i_o must_v demand_v how_o the_o minister_n of_o england_n can_v justify_v their_o call_n may_v not_o a_o man_n say_v to_o every_o one_o of_o you_o as_o 5._o harding_n say_v to_o jewel_n how_o say_v you_o sir_n you_o bear_v yourself_o as_o though_o you_o be_v bishop_n of_o salisbury_n but_o how_o can_v you_o prove_v your_o vocation_n by_o what_o authority_n usurp_v you_o the_o administration_n of_o doctrine_n and_o sacrament_n what_o can_v you_o allege_v for_o the_o right_n and_o proof_n of_o your_o ministry_n who_o have_v call_v you_o who_o have_v lay_v hand_n on_o you_o by_o what_o example_n have_v he_o do_v it_o how_o and_o by_o who_o be_v you_o consecrate_v who_o have_v send_v you_o who_o have_v commit_v unto_o you_o the_o office_n you_o take_v upon_o you_o be_v you_o a_o priest_n or_o be_v you_o not_o if_o you_o be_v not_o how_o dare_v you_o usurp_v the_o name_n and_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n if_o you_o be_v tell_v we_o who_o give_v you_o order_n orthod._n you_o please_v yourselves_o and_o beat_v the_o air_n with_o a_o sound_n of_o idle_a and_o empty_a word_n but_o leave_v your_o vain_a flourish_n and_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o you_o can_v say_v against_o our_o call_n phil._n then_o i_o demand_v whether_o you_o have_v a_o inward_a or_o a_o outward_a call_n orthod._n we_o have_v both_o phil._n a_o outward_a call_n must_v either_o be_v immediate_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v the_o call_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o mediate_o by_o the_o church_n orthod._n we_o be_v call_v of_o god_n by_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v 1●_n he_o which_o give_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o saint_n phil._n all_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n by_o the_o church_n derive_v their_o authority_n by_o lawful_a succession_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n if_o you_o do_v so_o then_o let_v it_o appear_v show_v we_o your_o descent_n let_v we_o see_v your_o pedigree_n if_o you_o can_v then_o what_o be_v you_o whence_o come_v you_o if_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o god_n have_v raise_v you_o in_o extraordinary_a manner_n you_o must_v pardon_v we_o if_o we_o be_v slow_a in_o believe_v such_o thing_n there_o be_v many_o deceiver_n go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n and_o satan_n can_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n in_o a_o word_n every_o lawful_a call_n be_v either_o ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a if_o you_o be_v ordinary_a let_v we_o see_v your_o authority_n if_o extraordinary_a let_v we_o see_v your_o miracle_n if_o one_o take_v upon_o he_o extraordinary_a authority_n as_o a_o ambassador_n from_o a_o king_n he_o must_v produce_v his_o commission_n under_o the_o king_n seal_n if_o you_o will_v challenge_v the_o like_a from_o god_n than_o we_o require_v a_o miracle_n that_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n but_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o 102._o doct._n stapleton_n in_o the_o hatch_n of_o the_o protestant_n brood_n no_o ordinary_a vocation_n nor_o send_v extraordinary_a appear_v so_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n be_v nought_o all_o which_o they_o have_v build_v upon_o it_o fall_v down_o orthod._n the_o minister_n of_o england_n receive_v imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o lawful_a manner_n from_o lawful_a bishop_n endue_v with_o lawful_a authority_n and_o therefore_o their_o calling_n be_v ordinary_a phil._n your_o bishop_n themselves_o whence_o have_v they_o this_o authority_n orthod._n they_o receive_v it_o from_o god_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o go_v before_o they_o phil._n but_o your_o first_o reformer_n whence_o do_v they_o derive_v their_o succession_n orthod._n archbishop_n cranmer_z and_o other_o heroical_a spirit_n who_o the_o lord_n use_v as_o his_o instrument_n to_o reform_v religion_n in_o england_n have_v the_o very_a selfsame_o ordination_n and_o succession_n whereof_o you_o so_o glory_n and_o therefore_o if_o these_o argue_v that_o your_o call_n be_v ordinary_a you_o must_v confess_v that_o they_o likewise_o be_v ordinary_a phil._n we_o must_v not_o only_o examine_v cranmer_n and_o such_o other_o consecrate_v in_o king_n henry_n time_n but_o they_o also_o which_o be_v in_o king_n edward_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n as_o parker_n grindall_n sands_n horn_n and_o the_o like_a which_o be_v priest_n after_o the_o roman_a rite_n but_o leap_v out_o of_o the_o church_n before_o they_o be_v bishop_n orthod._n as_o the_o first_o bishop_n consecrate_v in_o king_n edward_n time_n derive_v their_o spiritual_a power_n by_o succession_n from_o those_o that_o be_v in_o king_n henry_n so_o the_o first_o that_o be_v advance_v under_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n receive_v they_o from_o such_o as_o be_v former_o create_v partly_o in_o k._n henry_n day_n partly_o in_o king_n edward_n and_o the_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n under_o our_o gracious_a sovereign_a king_n james_n have_v the_o like_a succession_n from_o their_o predecessor_n as_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o record_n in_o particular_a and_o be_v confess_v in_o general_a by_o 266._o ●udsemius_fw-la who_o come_v into_o england_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1608._o to_o observe_v the_o state_n of_o our_o church_n and_o the_o order_n of_o our_o university_n 108._o concern_v the_o state_n say_v he_o of_o the_o caluinian_a sect_n in_o england_n it_o so_o stand_v that_o it_o may_v either_o endure_v long_o or_o be_v change_v sudden_o and_o in_o a_o tr●ce_n ordinem_fw-la in_o regard_n of_o the_o catholic_a order_n there_o in_o a_o
will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o lay-elder_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o do_v not_o trouble_v i_o with_o such_o fantastical_a conceit_n unknown_a to_o antiquity_n orthod._n you_o need_v not_o fear_v for_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o presbytery_n here_o mention_v ordain_v timothy_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o no_o layman_n may_v do_v therefore_o doubtless_o they_o be_v no_o layman_n but_o what_o in_o your_o judgement_n be_v mean_v by_o presbytery_n phil._n what_o else_o can_v presbyterium_fw-la signify_v but_o a_o company_n or_o assembly_n of_o presbyter_n orth._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v signify_v not_o only_o a_o company_n of_o presbyter_n but_o also_o the_o office_n and_o function_n of_o a_o presbyter_n for_o example_n 77_o eusebius_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o caesarea_n and_o jerusalem_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v impose_v hand_n upon_o he_o i_o upon_o origen_n for_o the_o office_n of_o a_o presbyter_n and_o again_o the_o bisop_n of_o caesarea_n pray_v he_o to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v when_o as_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o obtain_v ordination_n of_o priesthood_n and_o not_o long_o after_o he_o receive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o ordination_n of_o priesthood_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v likewise_o use_v socrates_n say_v that_o atticus_n place_v proclus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v in_o the_o order_n of_o deaconship_n and_o he_o be_v think_v worthy_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o office_n and_o order_n of_o a_o priest_n this_o signification_n be_v embrace_v by_o locum_fw-la hierome_n prim●sius_n anselmus_n expound_v presbyterium_fw-la by_o presbyteratus_n or_o episcopatus_fw-la that_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n or_o bishop_n likewise_o lyra_n locum_fw-la presbyterium_fw-la est_fw-la dignitas_fw-la vel_fw-la officium_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la that_o be_v the_o presbytery_n mention_v by_o saint_n paul_n be_v the_o dignity_n or_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n yea_o your_o own_o rhemiste_n confess_v so_o much_o in_o that_o they_o transtate_v the_o word_n presbyterium_fw-la in_o this_o very_a place_n priesthood_n which_o do_v not_o signify_v a_o company_n of_o priest_n but_o the_o office_n and_o order_n of_o a_o priest_n if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o your_o argument_n be_v shake_v in_o pe●ces_n for_o that_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o order_n or_o office_n of_o priesthood_n which_o be_v do_v by_o one_o priest_n only_o as_o well_o as_o though_o it_o be_v do_v by_o a_o thousand_o and_o this_o interpretation_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v countenance_v by_o conference_n of_o scripture_n because_o paul_n though_o a_o apostle_n yet_o according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v call_v a_o presbyter_n for_o this_o word_n presbyter_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n take_v for_o a_o ecclesiastical_a person_n do_v signify_v sometime_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o particular_a flock_n as_o when_o paul_n will_v titus_n to_o 5._o ordain_v presbyter_n in_o every_o city_n sometime_o it_o be_v take_v more_o general_o and_o extend_v even_o to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o so_o john_n call_v himself_o a_o 1._o presbyter_n and_o peter_n speak_v to_o presbyter_n call_v himself_o 1._o their_o fellow_n presbyter_n whence_o we_o may_v conclude_v by_o analogy_n that_o paul_n also_o may_v be_v call_v a_o presbyter_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o saint_n paul_n impose_v hand_n upon_o timothy_n for_o he_o say_v 6._o i_o put_v thou_o in_o remembrance_n that_o thou_o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o by_o the_o put_n on_o of_o my_o hand_n wherefore_o see_v the_o word_n presbytery_n may_v signify_v the_o office_n of_o a_o presbyter_n and_o saint_n paul_n may_v be_v call_v a_o presbyter_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o paul_n therefore_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o when_o the_o scripture_n ascribe_v his_o ordination_n to_o the_o presbytery_n it_o may_v be_v mean_v that_o he_o be_v make_v only_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o paul_n which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o dionysius_n carthusianus_n who_o say_v manuum_fw-la presbyterij_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la manuum_fw-la mearum_fw-la qui_fw-la te_fw-la ordinavi_fw-la episcopum_fw-la of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n that_o be_v of_o my_o hand_n which_o ordain_v thou_o a_o bishop_n but_o suppose_v that_o presbytery_n in_o this_o place_n signify_v a_o company_n or_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n as_o chrysostome_n theophylact_n and_o oecumenius_n interpret_v it_o how_o many_o will_v you_o judge_v to_o make_v a_o assembly_n phil._n suppose_v that_o three_o orth._n if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o upon_o ordinandi_fw-la bellarmine_n imagination_n that_o a_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n impose_v hand_n together_o with_o the_o ordainer_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o timothy_n be_v consecrate_v by_o four_o therefore_o if_o you_o make_v this_o example_n a_o perpetual_a pattern_n than_o all_o bishop_n must_v be_v consecrate_v by_o four_o which_o be_v against_o yourself_o phil._n it_o seem_v that_o two_o bishop_n may_v be_v call_v a_o assembly_n orthod._n though_o it_o be_v so_o yet_o you_o can_v conclude_v for_o how_o prove_v you_o that_o there_o be_v a_o assembly_n beside_o the_o principal_a consecrator_n phil._n bellarmine_n have_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o father_n allege_v ortho_n bellarmine_n abuse_v his_o reader_n for_o to_o begin_v with_o chrysostome_n he_o say_v he_o speak_v not_o of_o presbyter_n in_o this_o place_n but_o of_o bishop_n for_o presbyter_n ordain_v he_o not_o a_o bishop_n and_o theophylact_n with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n that_o be_v of_o bishop_n for_o presbyter_n do_v not_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n likewise_o occumenius_n by_o presbyter_n he_o mean_v bishop_n for_o presbyter_n be_v not_o to_o impose_v hand_n upon_o a_o bishop_n so_o these_o father_n by_o presbytery_n understand_v bishop_n the_o number_n they_o do_v not_o define_v neither_o do_v they_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o assembly_n beside_o the_o principal_a consecrator_n but_o concern_v the_o number_n you_o shall_v hear_v the_o judgement_n of_o your_o angelical_a doctor_n who_o bring_v two_o reading_n of_o this_o place_n presbyteri_fw-la and_o presbyterij_fw-la and_o handle_v the_o first_o he_o demand_v why_o 3_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v presbyteri_fw-la in_o the_o singular_a number_n see_v a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v by_o three_o to_o this_o he_o frame_v two_o answer_n first_o because_o though_o many_o meet_v together_o yet_o one_o be_v principal_a the_o rest_n conssistant_n second_o yet_o say_v he_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o this_o canon_n be_v not_o then_o make_v and_o that_o then_o there_o be_v but_o few_o bishop_n which_o can_v not_o be_v congregat_v so_o he_o think_v it_o probable_a that_o timothy_n be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o three_o whereto_o agree_v cardinal_n 493._o de_fw-fr turrecremat●_n petrus_n dicitur_fw-la solus_fw-la consecrasse_n beatum_fw-la johannem_fw-la euangelistam_fw-la paulus_n timotheum_n titum_fw-la &_o dionysium_fw-la i._o peter_n be_v say_v alone_o to_o have_v consecrate_v bless_v john_n the_o evangelist_n and_o paul_n to_o have_v consecrate_v timothy_n titus_n and_o dionysius_n and_o 3._o johannes_n mayor_n paulus_n non_fw-la quasivit_fw-la duos_fw-la pro_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la titi_fw-la &_o timothei_n i._o paul_n seek_v not_o other_o two_o bishop_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o titus_n and_o timothy_n so_o far_o be_v this_o place_n from_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o three_o bishop_n phil._n i_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o another_o place_n for_o 1._o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n 5_o which_o be_v at_o antioch_n prophet_n and_o doctor_n among_o who_o be_v barnabas_n &_o simeon_n that_o be_v call_v niger_n &_o lucius_n of_o cyrene_n and_o manahen_n who_o be_v the_o foster_n brother_n of_o herod_n the_o tetrarch_n and_o saul_n and_o as_o they_o be_v minister_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o fast_v the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v separate_a i_n saul_n and_o barnabas_n unto_o the_o work_n whereto_o i_o have_v call_v they_o then_o they_o fast_v and_o pray_v and_o impose_v hand_n upon_o they_o dismiss_v they_o behold_v not_o only_a barnabas_n but_o also_o saul_n that_o be_v paul_n the_o apostle_n be_v consecrate_v bishop_n &_o that_o by_o three_o bishop_n simeon_n lucius_n and_o manahen_n though_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n not_o of_o man_n nor_o by_o man_n yet_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o 3._o bishop_n that_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v observe_v ortho_n neither_o be_v they_o bishop_n neither_o do_v they_o make_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n bishop_n phil._n father_n turrian_n 302._o show_v that_o by_o doctor_n be_v mean_v presbyter_n and_o by_o prophet_n bishop_n and_o also_o that_o barnabas_n and_o saul_n be_v doctor_n or_o presbyter_n the_o other_o three_o
prophet_n or_o bishop_n which_o advance_v saul_n and_o barnabas_n from_o the_o presbyteral_a to_o the_o episcopal_a office_n ort._n these_o be_v dote_v dream_n not_o worth_a the_o answer_n for_o see_v the_o text_n faith_n only_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v at_o antioch_n prophet_n and_o doctor_n among_o who_o be_v barnabas_n simeon_n lucius_n manahen_n and_o saul_n why_o shall_v not_o we_o think_v barnabas_n to_o be_v call_v a_o prophet_n as_o well_o as_o simeon_n lucius_n and_o manahen_n see_v he_o be_v first_o name_v a_o point_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o 1._o lorinus_n the_o jesuite_n ascribe_v the_o title_n of_o prophet_n and_o doctor_n as_o well_o to_o saul_n and_o barnabas_n as_o to_o the_o rest_n if_o these_o prophet_n be_v bishop_n as_o turrian_n imagine_v than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o barnabas_n be_v a_o bishop_n before_o they_o lay_v hand_n upon_o he_o and_o consequent_o that_o he_o be_v reordein_v which_o be_v absurd_a moreover_o as_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o those_o three_o be_v bishop_n so_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o do_v not_o ordain_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n bishop_n for_o paul_n be_v a_o apostle_n can_v not_o receive_v any_o episcopal_a grace_n from_o man_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v wherefore_o this_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v not_o to_o give_v they_o any_o new_a power_n but_o as_o the_o text_n say_v to_o set_v 2._o they_o apart_o for_o the_o work_n whereunto_o the_o lord_n have_v call_v they_o which_o when_o they_o have_v fulfil_v they_o sail_v back_o to_o antioch_n whence_o they_o have_v be_v 26._o commend_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o say_v they_o fail_v to_o antioch_n where_o they_o be_v make_v bishop_n or_o where_o they_o receive_v episcopal_a grace_n but_o whence_o they_o have_v be_v commend_v with_o fast_v and_o prayer_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o which_o truth_n 34_o suarez_n the_o jesuite_n give_v testimony_n affirm_v that_o this_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v only_a precatory_n and_o deny_v that_o saul_n or_o barnabas_n be_v here_o ordain_v either_o priest_n or_o bishop_n which_o seem_v also_o to_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o supra_fw-la aloysius_n de_fw-fr leon_n and_o other_o late_a writer_n these_o be_v the_o only_a example_n which_o you_o produce_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v pregnant_a for_o your_o purpose_n and_o if_o they_o be_v what_o then_o a_o example_n may_v not_o be_v urge_v as_o a_o unchangeable_a rule_n when_o the_o matter_n discover_v itself_o to_o be_v contingent_a and_o variable_a chap._n vii_o that_o the_o presence_n of_o three_o bishop_n be_v not_o require_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n now_o that_o it_o be_v no_o substantial_a point_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n may_v be_v conclude_v out_o of_o your_o own_o position_n and_o practice_n for_o the_o declaration_n whereof_o first_o i_o demand_v whether_o episcopal_a consecration_n be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o no_o phil._n that_o ordination_n be_v a_o sacrament_n true_o and_o proper_o be_v right_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o 3._o trent_n for_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n only_o require_v to_o a_o sacrament_n as_o yourselves_o confess_v a_o external_a sign_n a_o promise_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o commandment_n or_o divine_a institution_n all_o which_o be_v find_v in_o ordination_n as_o our_o learned_a 2._o cardinal_n have_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 5._o who_o have_v also_o declare_v that_o those_o scripture_n whereby_o catholic_n do_v prove_v ordination_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n be_v understand_v of_o episcopal_a ordination_n whereupon_o he_o affirm_v that_o if_o episcopal_a ordination_n be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n we_o can_v prove_v evident_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o ordination_n be_v a_o sacrament_n orthod._n if_o the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v take_v somewhat_o large_o for_o any_o external_a sign_n institute_v of_o god_n whereto_o be_v annex_v a_o promise_n of_o grace_n than_o we_o will_v grant_v with_o saint_n 13._o austin_n that_o order_n may_v be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n but_o if_o it_o be_v take_v strict_o for_o such_o a_o sign_n as_o be_v 11._o a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n whereto_o be_v annex_v a_o promise_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o which_o sense_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v sacrament_n than_o we_o may_v not_o admit_v it_o for_o a_o sacrament_n for_o in_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o save_a grace_n of_o justification_n and_o 38._o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v signify_v seal_v and_o exhibit_v to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n but_o the_o grace_n give_v in_o ordination_n be_v of_o another_o nature_n respect_v not_o so_o much_o the_o good_a of_o the_o receiver_n as_o of_o the_o flock_n for_o which_o he_o receive_v it_o for_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v salt_n to_o season_v other_o candle_n to_o shine_v unto_o other_o pipe_n and_o conduit_n to_o convey_v the_o water_n of_o life_n unto_o other_o but_o do_v you_o not_o say_v that_o though_o three_o bishop_n be_v ordinary_o require_v to_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n yet_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v with_o two_o of_o the_o three_o phil._n i_o say_v so_o out_o of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n and_o binius_fw-la orthod._n what_o authority_n have_v the_o pope_n to_o dispense_v in_o sacrament_n phil._n that_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o 2._o trent_n moreover_o the_o holy_a synod_n declare_v that_o this_o power_n have_v always_o be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o sacrament_n it_o may_v appoint_v or_o change_v such_o thing_n as_o it_o shall_v judge_v to_o be_v most_o expedient_a for_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o receiver_n or_o the_o reverence_n of_o the_o sacrament_n themselves_o according_a to_o the_o variety_n of_o thing_n time_n and_o place_n salua_fw-la illorum_fw-la substantia_fw-la so_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v preserve_v whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v only_o with_o circumstance_n and_o not_o with_o substance_n orthod._n why_o then_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n dispense_v with_o the_o 2._o cup_n in_o the_o communion_n can_v you_o take_v away_o one_o half_n not_o diminish_v the_o substance_n but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v do_v you_o not_o mark_v the_o conclusion_n which_o flow_v from_o your_o premise_n if_o episcopal_a consecration_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o dispense_v with_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v dispense_v with_o two_o of_o the_o three_o bishop_n require_v in_o a_o consecration_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o two_o of_o the_o three_o be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o consecration_n second_o your_o own_o present_a practice_n do_v prove_v the_o same_o for_o you_o profess_v that_o in_o your_o church_n sometime_o one_o ad_fw-la bishop_n alone_o assist_v with_o two_o mitre_a abbot_n do_v perform_v it_o if_o this_o be_v sufficient_a then_o three_o bishop_n be_v not_o require_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n now_o let_v we_o a_o little_a look_n back_o to_o former_a time_n and_o consider_v the_o judgement_n of_o better_a age_n i_o will_v begin_v with_o the_o four_o 553._o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o the_o very_a 2_o place_n which_o you_o yourself_o allege_v wherein_o be_v prescribe_v the_o office_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o bishop_n when_o one_o be_v to_o be_v consecrate_v to_o wit_n how_o two_o shall_v hold_v the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n over_o his_o head_n one_o power_n out_o the_o blessing_n that_o be_v pronounce_v the_o word_n whereby_o the_o spiritual_a power_n grace_n and_o blessing_n be_v give_v and_o all_o the_o rest_n touch_v his_o head_n with_o their_o hand_n when_o one_o alone_o pronounce_v the_o word_n thenone_o alone_o ordain_v for_o the_o word_n be_v confess_v on_o all_o side_n to_o be_v the_o very_a essential_a form_n of_o ordination_n this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o collection_n of_o your_o own_o 493._o cardinal_n tenent_n librum_fw-la etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la videtur_fw-la quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la agatur_fw-la per_fw-la illos_fw-la episcopos_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la ad_fw-la substantiam_fw-la consecrationis_fw-la pertinens_fw-la ergo_fw-la eorum_fw-la assistentia_fw-la non_fw-la pertinet_fw-la ad_fw-la substantiam_fw-la consecrationis_fw-la sed_fw-la magis_fw-la ad_fw-la quandam_fw-la solennitatem_fw-la i._o they_o hold_v the_o book_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o it_o seem_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v by_o these_o two_o bishop_n which_o be_v pertain_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o consecration_n therefore_o their_o assistance_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o consecration_n but_o rather_o to_o a_o certain_a solemnity_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 441._o there_o be_v a_o council_n hold_v at_o orange_n in_o 3_o france_n where_o it_o be_v thus_o 1010._o decree_v duo_o si_fw-la presumpserint_fw-la
ordinare_fw-la episcopum_fw-la in_o nostris_fw-la provincijs_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o two_o presume_v to_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n in_o our_o province_n it_o please_v we_o to_o decree_n concern_v those_o presumptuous_a person_n that_o if_o it_o shall_v any_o where_o happen_v that_o two_o bishop_n shall_v make_v a_o bishop_n against_o his_o will_n the_o author_n be_v condemn_v he_o which_o suffer_v violence_n shall_v be_v substitute_v in_o the_o church_n of_o one_o of_o they_o if_o his_o life_n be_v answerable_a and_o that_o another_o nevertheless_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o other_o be_v cast_v out_o if_o two_o shall_v make_v a_o bishop_n with_o his_o consent_n than_o he_o also_o shall_v be_v condemn_v to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v institute_v by_o antiquity_n may_v be_v observe_v more_o wary_o here_o be_v two_o case_n for_o the_o ordain_v be_v either_o unwilling_a or_o willing_a if_o unwilling_a he_o enjoy_v the_o bishopric_n because_o he_o be_v not_o consent_v to_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o canon_n if_o he_o be_v willing_a than_o he_o also_o be_v condemn_v &_o put_v from_o the_o bishopric_n which_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o receive_v the_o episcopal_a power_n for_o if_o two_o bishop_n can_v confer_v it_o to_o one_o against_o his_o will_n undoubted_o they_o can_v give_v it_o to_o one_o that_o be_v willing_a but_o the_o first_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o council_n in_o that_o they_o allow_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o bishopric_n where_o he_o may_v exercise_v his_o episcopal_a function_n therefore_o the_o latter_a be_v not_o then_o doubt_v of_o but_o though_o both_o have_v receive_v alike_o power_n in_o their_o ordination_n yet_o the_o innocent_a be_v allow_v &_o the_o offender_n reject_v for_o discipline_n sake_n phil._n this_o canon_n be_v abiectione_n chaff_n orth._n if_o gratian_n mean_v this_o than_o he_o have_v foul_o mangle_v it_o but_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o this_o be_v no_o chaff_n you_o shall_v hear_v your_o own_o famous_a 3._o baronius_n nobilus_fw-la quidem_fw-la etc._n etc._n true_o this_o be_v to_o be_v call_v a_o most_o noble_a synod_n be_v adorn_v with_o a_o garland_n of_o most_o famous_a prelate_n and_o again_o ibidem_fw-la florebant_fw-la quidem_fw-la etc._n etc._n true_o the_o say_a province_n of_o france_n if_o any_o other_o coast_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n do_v flourish_v at_o this_o time_n with_o bishop_n both_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o learned_a by_o who_o painful_a vigilancy_n the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n remain_v in_o their_o strength_n and_o again_o tot_o igitur_fw-la etc._n etc._n 15._o therefore_o so_o many_o most_o famous_a prelate_n make_v the_o council_n of_o orange_n famous_a and_o glorious_a in_o all_o thing_n although_o it_o consist_v of_o a_o small_a assembly_n of_o bishop_n and_o lest_o a_o man_n shall_v wonder_v at_o this_o rare_a commendation_n he_o render_v his_o reason_n ibidem_fw-la porro_fw-la ut_fw-la tot_fw-la ensign_fw-la etc._n etc._n moreover_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v find_v in_o the_o same_o province_n so_o many_o man_n notable_a for_o learning_n and_o godliness_n the_o cause_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o most_o famous_a monastery_n of_o jusula_n lerinensis_n the_o land_n next_o adjoin_v be_v a_o seminary_n of_o most_o holy_a bishop_n which_o he_o further_o extoll_v by_o the_o verse_n of_o sydonius_n apollinarius_n to_o baronius_n we_o will_v adjoine_v binius_fw-la who_o use_v to_o gather_v stick_n under_o baronius_n his_o hedge_n haec_fw-la 1011._o synodus_fw-la clarissimorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o most_o noble_a synod_n beautify_v with_o a_o crown_n of_o most_o noble_a prelate_n in_o it_o fifteen_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o lion_n &_o marbona_n meet_v after_o their_o manner_n make_v 29_o canon_n concern_v the_o law_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o most_o noble_a synod_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o bishop_n which_o be_v consecrate_a only_o by_o two_o and_o therefore_o three_o be_v not_o require_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n hitherto_o of_o the_o counsel_n now_o let_v we_o consider_v example_n of_o antiquity_n dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v consecrate_v only_o by_o two_o and_o 4._o yet_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v sufficient_a episcopal_a power_n the_o former_a point_n be_v testify_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o pontus_n in_o a_o synodall_n 1●3_n epistle_n ordinationem_fw-la svam_fw-la adamnatis_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la duobus_fw-la accepit_fw-la i._n he_o receive_v his_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n condemn_v and_o that_o only_o of_o two_o the_o latter_a may_v appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o 1._o act_n whereof_o he_o be_v usual_o style_v the_o most_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n yea_o that_o title_n be_v give_v he_o by_o 5._o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o doryleum_n his_o accuser_n by_o the_o 7._o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o by_o the_o 72._o council_n itself_o in_o a_o synodall_n epistle_n and_o as_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o a_o bishop_n so_o they_o allow_v of_o anatolius_n who_o he_o do_v consecrate_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o tharasius_n utter_v in_o the_o seven_o general_a 307._o council_n tharasius_n the_o most_o bless_a patriarch_n say_v what_o say_v you_o of_o anatolius_n be_v he_o not_o a_o prince_n of_o the_o four_o synod_n yet_o he_o be_v create_v bishop_n by_o dioscorus_n and_o that_o eutyches_n be_v present_a therefore_o let_v we_o also_o receive_v the_o ordain_v of_o heretic_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o anatolius_n be_v receive_v yea_o he_o be_v approve_v and_o receive_v into_o communion_n by_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o approve_v in_o these_o word_n leo_fw-la 40._o episcopus_fw-la anatolio_fw-la episcopo_fw-la receive_v into_o communion_n in_o these_o word_n in_o qua_fw-la communionis_fw-la integritate_fw-la societatem_fw-la tuus_fw-la dilectionis_fw-la amplectimur_fw-la i._n in_o which_o soundness_n of_o communion_n we_o embrace_v the_o fellowship_n of_o your_o love_n now_o see_v anatolius_n be_v acknowledge_v for_o a_o bishop_n by_o a_o pope_n and_o two_o general_a counsel_n you_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o dioscorus_n who_o ordain_v he_o be_v likewise_o a_o bishop_n although_o he_o be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o three_o now_o let_v we_o cross_v the_o mediterranean_a sea_n and_o pass_v from_o alexandria_n to_o 5._o rome_n and_o here_o what_o think_v you_o of_o pelagius_n the_o first_o be_v not_o he_o a_o true_a and_o lawful_a bishop_n phil._n he_o be_v commend_v by_o pope_n 626._o adrian_n and_o general_o put_v into_o the_o catalogue_n ortho_n but_o pope_n pelagius_n be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o three_o as_o appear_v by_o 1._o anastasius_n who_o word_n be_v register_v both_o by_o 626._o baronius_n and_o 10._o binius_fw-la et_fw-la dum_fw-la non_fw-la essent_fw-la episcopi_fw-la qui_fw-la cum_fw-la ordinarent_fw-la inventi_fw-la sunt_fw-la duo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la johannes_n de_fw-fr perusio_fw-la &_o bone_fw-la de_fw-fr ferentino_fw-it &_o andreas_n presbyter_n de_fw-fr ostia_n &_o eum_fw-la ordinaverunt_fw-la episcopum_fw-la upon_o which_o place_n 1._o binius_fw-la say_v when_o pelagius_n have_v approve_v the_o five_o synod_n he_o so_o great_o offend_v all_o the_o western_a bishop_n that_o he_o can_v not_o find_v sufficient_a prelate_n of_o which_o he_o may_v be_v ordain_v according_a to_o the_o apostolical_a constitution_n and_o so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o at_o the_o command_n of_o pelagius_n a_o priest_n of_o ostia_n which_o have_v never_o happen_v before_o shall_v perform_v the_o office_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o bishop_n here_o be_v a_o clear_a confession_n that_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o case_n of_o necessity_n be_v consecrate_v only_o by_o two_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n and_o yet_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o same_o place_n of_o anastasius_n that_o he_o ordain_v in_o his_o time_n 26._o priest_n and_o 49._o bishop_n now_o if_o three_o bishop_n be_v require_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n than_o there_o be_v a_o nullity_n in_o his_o consecration_n and_o consequent_o in_o all_o the_o consecration_n derive_v from_o he_o and_o so_o there_o will_v follow_v a_o world_n of_o nullity_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o if_o there_o be_v no_o nullity_n in_o his_o consecration_n than_o you_o can_v conclude_v a_o nullity_n for_o the_o want_n of_o three_o hitherto_o of_o three_o now_o i_o will_v prove_v that_o two_o be_v not_o require_v of_o absolute_a 6._o necessity_n for_o euagrius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v ordain_v by_o paulinus_n alone_o and_o yet_o be_v allow_v for_o a_o lawful_a bishop_n phil._n i_o doubt_v of_o both_o branch_n how_o prove_v you_o the_o first_o orthod._n paulinus_n alone_o say_v 23._o theodoret_n transgress_v many_o law_n have_v create_v he_o for_o the_o canon_n do_v not_o permit_v one_o to_o choose_v his_o successor_n they_o command_v that_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n shall_v be_v assemble_v they_o forbid_v any_o man_n to_o be_v create_v unless_o three_o
monastery_n which_o have_v only_o set_v down_o the_o name_n of_o such_o as_o succeed_v such_o person_n in_o such_o place_n but_o have_v not_o describe_v their_o successive_a ordination_n &_o if_o you_o can_v show_v we_o this_o also_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o think_v that_o constantinople_n and_o alexandria_n may_v have_v this_o as_o well_o as_o rome_n moreover_o your_o own_o former_a example_n do_v confute_v you_o for_o 6_o manasses_n the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o temple_n in_o mount_n garizim_n be_v brother_n to_o jaddi_n the_o high_a priest_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o have_v the_o like_a succession_n from_o aaron_n yet_o the_o samaritan_n be_v not_o a_o true_a but_o schismatical_a church_n in_o regard_n whereof_o their_o temple_n be_v call_v ibid._n templum_fw-la transgressorum_fw-la final_o suppose_v that_o into_o the_o place_n of_o a_o catholic_a and_o canonical_a bishop_n decease_v a_o capable_a and_o catholic_a man_n be_v canonical_o choose_v and_o consecrate_v yet_o it_o be_v very_o possible_a that_o he_o may_v become_v a_o heretic_n as_o for_o example_n a_o arrian_n and_o may_v draw_v his_o flock_n after_o he_o will_v you_o now_o say_v that_o this_o flock_n so_o poison_v with_o arianism_n be_v the_o true_a member_n of_o your_o catholic_a church_n yet_o here_o be_v local_a and_o personal_a succession_n yea_o even_o the_o golden_a chain_n of_o successive_a ordination_n therefore_o that_o assertion_n of_o stapletons_n to_o with_o that_o wheresoever_o this_o succession_n be_v there_o be_v also_o a_o true_a catholic_a church_n can_v be_v defend_v but_o 8._o bellarmine_n say_v far_o more_o true_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o where_o there_o be_v succession_n for_o beside_o this_o outward_a succession_n there_o must_v likewise_o be_v the_o inward_a succession_n of_o doctrine_n to_o make_v a_o true_a church_n 43_o irenaeus_n describe_v those_o which_o have_v true_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v such_o as_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o episcopal_a office_n have_v receive_v the_o certain_a grace_n of_o truth_n and_o this_o kind_n of_o succession_n he_o call_v the_o principal_a succession_n so_o gregory_n 21._o nazianzen_n have_v say_v that_o athanasius_n succeed_v saint_n mark_v in_o godliness_n add_v that_o this_o succession_n in_o godliness_n be_v proper_o to_o be_v account_v succession_n for_o he_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v also_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o throne_n but_o he_o that_o be_v against_o the_o doctrine_n must_v be_v repute_v a_o adversary_n even_o while_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o throne_n for_o the_o latter_a have_v the_o name_n of_o succession_n but_o the_o former_a have_v the_o thing_n itself_o and_o the_o truth_n therefore_o you_o must_v prove_v your_o succession_n in_o doctrine_n otherwise_o you_o must_v be_v hold_v for_o adversary_n even_o while_o you_o sit_v in_o the_o throne_n phil._n we_o can_v prove_v it_o when_o occasion_n require_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n though_o we_o can_v conclude_v affirmative_o that_o where_o successive_a ordination_n be_v there_o be_v a_o church_n yet_o we_o may_v conclude_v negative_o that_o that_o where_o it_o be_v not_o there_o be_v no_o church_n ortho_n have_v not_o pope_n pelagius_n this_o ordination_n you_o speak_v of_o phil._n he_o have_v no_o doubt_n and_o so_o succeed_v the_o bless_a apostle_n orthod._n but_o he_o be_v consecrate_v only_o by_o two_o as_o i_o have_v 7._o prove_v so_o euagrius_n be_v a_o lawful_a bishop_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o consequent_o in_o your_o own_o judgement_n have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n yet_o as_o have_v be_v declare_v he_o be_v consecrate_v only_o by_o one_o therefore_o you_o must_v confess_v that_o one_o may_v be_v a_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n although_o he_o be_v consecrate_v only_o by_o one_o yet_o mistake_v i_o not_o i_o speak_v not_o this_o as_o though_o any_o of_o our_o english_a protestant_n bishop_n since_o the_o time_n of_o reformation_n be_v so_o consecrate_v we_o be_v ready_a to_o justify_v that_o their_o order_n be_v not_o only_o sufficient_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o also_o exact_a according_a to_o the_o strictness_n of_o the_o canon_n phil._n or_o if_o they_o be_v not_o then_o as_o those_o which_o can_v not_o show_v their_o pedigree_n from_o aaron_n 64_o be_v put_v from_o the_o priesthood_n so_o you_o must_v be_v content_a to_o be_v serve_v in_o like_a manner_n orthodox_n see_v you_o accuse_v we_o for_o break_v the_o golden_a chain_n 3_o behold_v take_v it_o in_o your_o hand_n examine_v it_o from_o end_n to_o end_n look_v upon_o every_o link_n let_v we_o see_v those_o breach_n those_o rupture_n those_o dissolution_n you_o speak_v of_o and_o let_v it_o appear_v to_o the_o world_n whether_o you_o or_o we_o have_v break_v the_o canon_n and_o because_o you_o so_o brag_v and_o blaze_v your_o own_o arm_n let_v we_o first_o see_v how_o you_o can_v prove_v your_o glorious_a succession_n phil._n we_o can_v name_v the_o bishop_n which_o succeed_v one_o another_o in_o their_o several_a see_v even_o till_o the_o time_n of_o schism_n orthod._n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o bishop_n succeed_a one_o another_o and_o another_o thing_n to_o plot_n out_o the_o whole_a chain_n of_o their_o successive_a ordination_n this_o be_v the_o thing_n you_o require_v at_o our_o hand_n can_v you_o perform_v it_o if_o not_o by_o your_o own_o sentence_n you_o must_v be_v put_v from_o your_o priesthood_n phil._n we_o can_v if_o you_o will_v grant_v that_o unto_o we_o which_o be_v reason_n shall_v be_v grant_v for_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o our_o english_a catholic_a bishop_n derive_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o saxon_n the_o saxon_n from_o the_o french_a some_o of_o both_o from_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o roman_a from_o all_o nation_n therefore_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o record_n must_v be_v search_v if_o we_o will_v particular_o deduce_v the_o successive_a ordination_n of_o any_o one_o bishop_n of_o late_a time_n now_o although_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v careful_a to_o record_v the_o consecration_n yet_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o some_o may_v be_v omit_v by_o negligence_n of_o register_n it_o be_v possible_a that_o some_o former_o record_v may_v be_v perish_v by_o injury_n of_o time_n it_o be_v possible_a that_o some_o yet_o remain_v upon_o record_n can_v by_v we_o be_v attain_v because_o they_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o enemy_n but_o what_o of_o all_o this_o see_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n and_o kingdom_n require_v three_o see_v the_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v continual_o by_o three_o therefore_o when_o we_o read_v of_o any_o bishop_n general_o repute_v a_o bishop_n perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n by_o give_v holy_a order_n subscribe_v to_o general_a counsel_n execute_v without_o any_o check_n or_o controlment_n the_o duty_n belong_v to_o a_o bishop_n we_o may_v in_o all_o reason_n presume_v that_o he_o be_v make_v canonical_o by_o three_o if_o there_o be_v neither_o public_a fame_n nor_o probable_a reason_n nor_o suspicion_n to_o the_o contrary_n for_o wanton_a wit_n must_v not_o be_v suffer_v upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n to_o call_v reverend_a antiquity_n into_o question_n otherwise_o see_v none_o can_v be_v a_o bishop_n unless_o he_o be_v first_o a_o priest_n a_o peevish_a man_n may_v deny_v they_o to_o be_v bishop_n unless_o he_o do_v see_v their_o letter_n of_o order_n again_o see_v no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o priest_n except_o he_o be_v baptize_v a_o froward_a fellow_n may_v deny_v their_o priesthood_n unless_o it_o can_v be_v produce_v by_o who_o and_o where_o they_o be_v baptize_v no_o sir_n we_o may_v not_o admit_v of_o such_o deal_n neither_o must_v we_o be_v put_v to_o prove_v these_o thing_n but_o when_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o contrary_a we_o may_v presume_v they_o to_o be_v do_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o all_o christian_a nation_n orthodox_n you_o speak_v reason_n only_o this_o i_o require_v at_o your_o hand_n that_o the_o same_o liberty_n which_o you_o assume_v to_o yourselves_o you_o will_v according_a to_o equity_n allow_v to_o other_o and_o see_v you_o challenge_v all_o the_o bishop_n before_o cranmer_n for_o your_o own_o may_v it_o please_v you_o to_o let_v we_o see_v the_o several_a link_n of_o your_o golden_a chain_n from_o the_o first_o conversion_n until_o his_o time_n and_o we_o will_v extend_v they_o to_o this_o present_a day_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o this_o
same_o reason_n of_o this_o and_o the_o former_a orthod._n there_o be_v so_o for_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a baptizer_n so_o he_o be_v the_o 11._o chief_a ordainer_n it_o be_v he_o that_o give_v d_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n unto_o the_o church_n therefore_o the_o personal_a iniquity_n of_o the_o servant_n can_v disannul_v the_o gracious_a gift_n of_o the_o master_n for_o who_o confer_v priesthood_n among_o the_o jew_n after_o the_o consecration_n of_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n which_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o 8._o moses_n and_o be_v extraordinary_a there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o honour_n of_o it_o belong_v ordinary_o to_o the_o high_a priest_n but_o do_v not_o aaron_n make_v a_o 4._o golden_a calf_n do_v not_o eli_n 13._o see_v his_o son_n run_v into_o a_o slander_n and_o stay_v they_o not_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o live_v they_o do_v execute_v the_o pontifical_a office_n neither_o be_v their_o ordination_n call_v in_o question_n no_o not_o the_o ordination_n of_o annas_n and_o caiaphas_n but_o be_v there_o the_o same_o reason_n here_o also_o of_o heretic_n and_o schismatik_n phil._n card._n bell_n say_v esse_fw-la quis_fw-la ignorat_fw-la catholicorum_n baptizatos_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticis_fw-la verè_fw-la esse_fw-la baptizatos_fw-la &_o similiter_fw-la ordinatos_fw-la verè_fw-la esse_fw-la ordinatos_fw-la quando_fw-la ordinator_fw-la haereticus_fw-la verè_fw-la episcopus_fw-la fuerat_fw-la &_o adhuc_fw-la erat_fw-la saltem_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la characterem_fw-la i._o which_o of_o the_o catholic_n be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o baptise_a of_o heretic_n be_v true_o baptise_a and_o those_o that_o be_v likewise_o ordain_v of_o heretic_n be_v true_o ordain_v when_o the_o heretical_a ordainer_n have_v be_v true_o a_o bishop_n and_o be_v still_o at_o least_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o character_n orthod._n 869._o s._n basill_n affirm_v that_o of_o all_o the_o arch_a heretic_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n whereof_o many_o be_v then_o very_o famous_a none_o ever_o dare_v reordaine_v the_o ordain_v except_o one_o eustathius_n ancyrogalata_n who_o wicked_a crime_n the_o council_n of_o gangrene_n declare_v in_o the_o 306._o 2._o council_n at_o nice_a the_o monk_n say_v according_a to_o six_o holy_a and_o general_a counsel_n we_o receive_v those_o that_o return_n from_o heresy_n unless_o there_o be_v some_o intolerable_a cause_n tharasius_n the_o most_o bless_a patriarch_n say_v and_o all_o we_o also_o be_v instruct_v of_o our_o holy_a father_n do_v so_o define_v and_o again_o 307._o tharasius_n the_o most_o bless_a patriarch_n say_v what_o say_v you_o of_o anatolius_n be_v not_o he_o precedent_n of_o the_o four_o synod_n yet_o he_o be_v create_v of_o that_o wicked_a dioscorus_n therefore_o let_v we_o also_o receive_v the_o ordain_v of_o heretic_n as_o anatolius_n be_v receive_v and_o again_o tharasius_n the_o most_o bless_a patriarch_n say_v 308._o true_o very_o many_o which_o be_v precedent_n in_o the_o six_o synod_n be_v create_v of_o sergius_n pyrrhus_n paul_n and_o peter_n teacher_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o monothelite_n yea_o these_o likewise_o divide_v the_o constantinopolitan_a see_v among_o the_o clergy_n from_o peter_n their_o last_o teacher_n unto_o the_o six_o synod_n there_o come_v between_o no_o few_o than_o fifteen_o year_n in_o which_o space_n be_v thomas_n john_n and_o constantine_n ordain_v of_o heretic_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o for_o this_o cause_n reject_v the_o heresy_n last_v about_o fifty_o year_n yet_o the_o father_n in_o the_o six_o synod_n condemn_v only_o the_o forename_a four_o whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o heresy_n in_o their_o judgement_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o power_n of_o give_v order_n which_o you_o confess_v and_o must_v needs_o because_o one_o of_o your_o own_o pope_n be_v ordain_v by_o heretic_n if_o felix_n the_o second_o be_v a_o pope_n phil._n in_o 63._o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o the_o roman_a martyrologe_n be_v set_v out_o at_o rome_n where_o there_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n among_o learned_a man_n concern_v felix_n whether_o his_o name_n be_v to_o be_v spunge_v out_o and_o baronius_n with_o many_o other_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n but_o it_o fall_v out_o as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o divine_a miracle_n the_o very_a day_n before_o saint_n felix_n his_o day_n that_o some_o dig_v for_o treasure_n find_v a_o chest_n wherein_o be_v this_o inscription_n the_o body_n of_o felix_n pope_n and_o martyr_n which_o condemn_v constantius_n so_o baronius_n yield_v to_o felix_n as_o it_o be_v plead_v his_o own_o cause_n especial_o see_v pope_n gregory_n himself_o be_v of_o that_o judgement_n therefore_o we_o confess_v that_o felix_n be_v a_o lawful_a pope_n although_o his_o entrance_n be_v much_o to_o be_v mislike_v for_o 490._o according_a to_o the_o common_a sentence_n of_o the_o father_n he_o be_v intrude_v by_o the_o arian_n and_o ordain_v of_o they_o therefore_o at_o the_o first_o while_o liberius_n suffer_v persecution_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n he_o be_v a_o schismatical_a antipope_n but_o as_o ibidem_fw-la binius_fw-la say_v from_o such_o time_n as_o he_o advance_v the_o banner_n of_o faith_n by_o excommunicate_v constantius_n vrsacius_n valens_n and_o other_o arian_n and_o liberius_n for_o his_o manifest_a communion_n with_o heretic_n be_v plain_o account_v banish_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o catholic_n omnium_fw-la catholicorum_n iudicio_fw-la quanquam_fw-la antea_fw-la schismaticus_fw-la fuisset_fw-la legitimus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la pontifex_fw-la haebericaepit_fw-la that_o be_v although_o before_o he_o have_v be_v a_o schismatic_n yet_o then_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v account_v the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o catholic_n orthod._n then_o you_o confess_v that_o felix_n which_o be_v ordain_v of_o arian_n be_v notwithstanding_o a_o lawful_a bishop_n yea_o and_o a_o lawful_a pope_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o catholic_n for_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v otherwise_o what_o will_v become_v of_o those_o five_o deacon_n 21._o priest_n 19_o supra_fw-la bishop_n which_o he_o ordain_v if_o heretic_n have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v than_o felix_n be_v no_o bishop_n and_o consequent_o according_a to_o your_o own_o position_n all_o ordination_n derive_v from_o he_o be_v mere_a nullity_n phil._n you_o hear_v before_o out_o of_o the_o counsel_n of_o florence_n and_o trent_n that_o the_o character_n be_v indelible_a whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o neither_o schism_n nor_o heresy_n nor_o any_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n can_v take_v it_o away_o wherefore_o see_v the_o episcopal_a character_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o diverse_a from_o the_o presbyterall_a or_o the_o same_o more_o extend_v be_v a_o absolute_a perfect_a and_o independent_a power_n of_o confer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n and_o order_n therefore_o a_o bishop_n may_v not_o only_o without_o any_o further_a dispensation_n confirm_v and_o order_n but_o he_o can_v be_v hinder_v by_o any_o superior_a power_n but_o that_o he_o may_v true_o confer_v these_o sacrament_n if_o it_o please_v himself_o as_o our_o learned_a 12._o cardinal_n affirm_v which_o be_v also_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o schoolman_n heretic_n say_v 25._o dominicus_n a_o soto_n whosoever_o they_o be_v even_o such_o as_o be_v cut_v off_o although_o they_o be_v not_o former_o promote_v lawful_o by_o the_o church_n but_o by_o heretic_n do_v very_o confer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n although_o they_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o while_o they_o do_v confer_v it_o they_o sin_n mortal_o gabriel_n biel_n 4._o although_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o heretic_n and_o apostata_fw-la degrade_v cut_v off_o or_o public_o excommunicate_v be_v deprive_v of_o all_o jurisdiction_n by_o the_o law_n itself_o neither_o can_v he_o absolve_v any_o man_n from_o his_o sin_n yet_o he_o may_v actual_o ordain_v any_o man_n capable_a of_o the_o order_n be_v willing_a yea_o though_o he_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o his_o jurisdiction_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o church_n do_v just_o prohibit_v he_o and_o capreolus_n ma●gi●e_n bishop_n although_o they_o be_v heretic_n schismatickes_n and_o degrade_v may_v confer_v order_n this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o 832._o pope_n anastasius_n concern_v those_o who_o acasius_n ordain_v after_o his_o condemnation_n to_o wit_n attiger●t_fw-la that_o no_o harm_n at_o all_o shall_v befall_v they_o by_o all_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o order_n thus_o minister_v be_v effectual_a ortho_n but_o do_v not_o degradation_n deprive_v a_o man_n of_o the_o degree_n phil._n non_fw-fr est_fw-fr dubitandum_fw-la say_v petrus_n a_o soto_n per_fw-la haeresim_fw-la vel_fw-la excommunicationem_fw-la sive_fw-la etiam_fw-la degradationem_fw-la non_fw-la amittipotestatem_fw-la quae_fw-la sacramento_fw-la collata_fw-la est_fw-la sive_fw-la characterem_fw-la ut_fw-la dicunt_fw-la baptismi_fw-la confirmationis_fw-la &_o ordinis_fw-la quanquam_fw-la usus_fw-la illius_fw-la amittatur_fw-la that_o be_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o the_o power_n
which_o have_v not_o the_o right_a order_n of_o priesthood_n but_o the_o priesthood_n confer_v in_o king_n edward_n time_n be_v no_o priesthood_n because_o they_o want_v the_o authority_n to_o offer_v the_o bless_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n therefore_o those_o priest_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o the_o episcopal_a order_n ortho_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o see_v that_o king_n edward_n rain_v but_o six_o year_n and_o five_o month_n it_o be_v likely_a that_o most_o of_o they_o which_o be_v advance_v in_o his_o time_n to_o be_v bishop_n be_v before_o his_o time_n in_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n second_o if_o any_o be_v produce_v which_o be_v not_o yet_o it_o shall_v be_v justify_v god_n will_v when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o point_n that_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n confer_v in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n edward_n queen_n elizabeth_n and_o king_n james_n be_v the_o true_a ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o your_o sacrifice_a priesthood_n be_v sacrilegious_a and_o abominable_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o hold_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v holy_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o justifiable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n chap._n xii_o of_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_a in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n marie_n the_o lineal_a descent_n have_v lead_v we_o to_o the_o bishop_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n concern_v which_o shall_v i_o crave_v your_o judgement_n phil._n you_o know_v it_o already_o they_o be_v all_o canonical_a orthod._n for_o the_o more_o distinct_a proceed_n let_v we_o divide_v they_o into_o two_o rank_n the_o old_a bishop_n and_o the_o new_a the_o old_a i_o call_v such_o as_o be_v consecrate_v before_o her_o time_n be_v continue_v in_o her_o time_n the_o new_a which_o be_v consecrate_a in_o her_o time_n phil._n all_o which_o be_v allow_v for_o bishop_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n whether_o old_a or_o new_a be_v canonical_a ortho_n the_o old_a bishop_n be_v all_o make_v in_o the_o day_n of_o k._n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o almost_o all_o in_o those_o very_a time_n which_o you_o brand_v with_o imputation_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n when_o none_o can_v be_v consecrate_a unless_o he_o do_v swear_v to_o the_o king_n against_o the_o pope_n wherefore_o see_n you_o judge_v both_o consecrator_n and_o consecrate_a schismatical_a and_o heretical_a and_o yet_o esteem_v they_o canonical_a your_o objection_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n must_v eternal_o be_v silence_v in_o the_o question_n of_o canonical_a bishop_n for_o if_o these_o crime_n can_v frustrate_v a_o consecration_n than_o their_o consecration_n be_v frustrate_v and_o they_o be_v no_o bishop_n or_o if_o they_o be_v bishop_n and_o canonical_a than_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o king_n henry_n time_n be_v likewise_o canonical_a moreover_o some_o of_o they_o who_o you_o so_o commend_v be_v bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n as_o for_o example_n thomas_n thurlby_n who_o king_n henry_n promote_v to_o be_v bishop_n of_o westminster_n be_v advance_v by_o king_n edward_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o norwich_n and_o afterward_o prefer_v by_o queen_n mary_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o ely_n and_o moreover_o to_o be_v one_o of_o her_o privy_a council_n yea_o some_o of_o they_o have_v the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n namely_o anthony_n kitchen_n who_o in_o king_n henry_n time_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o landaff_n keep_v his_o dignity_n and_o place_n in_o the_o day_n of_o k._n edward_n continue_v the_o same_o all_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n and_o so_o till_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n which_o be_v in_o the_o five_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n wherefore_o in_o justify_v the_o old_a bishop_n you_o justify_v all_o general_o which_o be_v consecrate_a in_o king_n henry_n day_n and_o some_o which_o continue_v in_o king_n edward_n and_o queen_n elizabeth_n but_o now_o from_o the_o old_a let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o new_a phil._n queen_n mary_n advance_v holiman_n bishop_n of_o bristol_n coates_n bishop_n of_o 2_o chester_n watson_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n morris_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n morgan_n bishop_n of_o s._n davis_n brook_n bishop_n of_o gloucester_n glin_n bishop_n of_o bangor_n christophorson_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n david_n poole_n bishop_n of_o peterborow_n cardinal_n poole_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o other_o orthod._n and_o these_o reverend_a prelate_n bush_n bishop_n of_o bristol_n tailor_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n scory_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n barlow_n bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o well_n coverdale_n bishop_n of_o exeter_n and_o hearty_a bishop_n of_o hereford_n with_o sundry_a other_o be_v at_o that_o time_n force_v to_o leave_v their_o bishopric_n for_o what_o cause_n partly_o for_o not_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o popish_a religion_n partly_o because_o they_o be_v marry_v which_o 〈◊〉_d greg._n martin_n call_v a_o pollute_a of_o holy_a order_n though_o s._n paul_n say_v it_o be_v honourable_a among_o all_o man_n and_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a but_o let_v we_o see_v the_o consecration_n of_o your_o new_a bishop_n phil._n i_o will_v begin_v with_o that_o renown_a prelate_n cardinal_n poole_n who_o consecration_n follow_v anno_fw-la 1555._o reginald_n 3_o poole_n cons_n archb._n cant._n 22._o mart._n by_o nichol_n arch._n ebor._n thom._n eltens_n edmund_n lond._n rich._n wigorn._n joh._n lincoln_n mauric_n roff._n thom._n asaph_n anno_fw-la 1557._o thom_n 10._o watson_n david_n 12._o pole_n cons._n b._n 15._o aug._n by_o nich._n ebor._n thom._n eli._n wil._n bangor_n anno_fw-la 1557._o joh._n christophorson_n cons_n b._n 21._o no._n by_o edmund_n lond._n tho._n elien_n mauric_n roff._n orthod._n all_o these_o derive_v their_o consecration_n from_o bishop_n which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o pretend_a schism_n and_o some_o of_o they_o from_o cranmer_n himself_o therefore_o you_o must_v either_o acknowledge_v all_o they_o and_o namely_o cranmer_n for_o canonical_a or_o neither_o cardinal_n poole_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n make_v in_o queen_n mary_n time_n can_v be_v canonical_a the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o bishop_n consecrate_a in_o the_o reign_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n and_o of_o our_o gracious_a sovereign_a king_n james_n chap._n i._n of_o the_o bishop_n depose_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n with_o a_o answer_n to_o certain_a odious_a imputation_n concern_v some_o antecedent_n and_o consequent_n of_o their_o deposition_n phil._n the_o revolution_n of_o time_n have_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n even_o to_o that_o black_a and_o doleful_a day_n wherein_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n all_z i_o say_v one_o only_o except_v be_v depose_v from_o their_o degree_n and_o dignity_n it_o for_o a_o great_a penalty_n be_v inflict_v upon_o such_o as_o shall_v after_o the_o feast_n of_o s._n john_n baptis●_n 1559._o say_v or_o hear_v mass_n or_o procure_v any_o other_o ecclesiastical_a office_n whatsoever_o after_o the_o old_a rite_n or_o administer_v any_o sacrament_n after_o the_o roman_a manner_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o which_o offend_v against_o that_o law_n for_o the_o first_o time_n shall_v pay_v 200_o noble_n or_o be_v in_o bond_n six_o month_n for_o the_o second_o 400._o noble_n or_o a_o year_n in_o bond_n for_o the_o three_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o perpetual_a prison_n and_o forfeit_v all_o his_o good_n by_o which_o mean_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o at_o the_o day_n prescribe_v the_o holy_a and_o divine_a office_n cease_v to_o be_v perform_v public_o through_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o because_o the_o bishop_n will_v not_o consent_v to_o those_o impiety_n nor_o affirm_v upon_o their_o oath_n that_o they_o believe_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o the_o queen_n only_o be_v the_o supreme_a governess_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n under_o christ_n they_o be_v all_o save_v one_o short_o after_o depose_v from_o their_o degree_n and_o dignitte_v and_o commit_v to_o certain_a prison_n and_o custody_n whereupon_o they_o be_v all_o at_o this_o day_n dead_a with_o the_o long_a tediousness_n of_o their_o misery_n the_o name_n of_o which_o most_o glorious_a confessor_n i_o will_v set_v down_o that_o the_o thing_n may_v be_v have_v in_o everlasting_a remembrance_n first_o of_o all_o nicholas_n archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o a_o little_a before_o that_o time_n lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n than_o edmund_n bonner_n bishop_n of_o london_n and_o tunstall_n of_o durham_n john_n of_o winton_n thomas_n of_o lincoln_n thurlby_n of_o ely_n turberuill_a of_o exeter_n bear_v of_o bath_n pole_n of_o peterborow_n baine_n of_o lichfield_n cuthbert_n of_o chester_n oglethorp_n of_o carlisle_n and_o thomas_n goldwell_n of_o s._n asaph_n etc._n etc._n orth._n here_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v discuss_v the_o depose_n of_o the_o old_a bishop_n and_o advance_v of_o the_o new_a concern_v the_o first_o
binius_fw-la out_o of_o 452._o baronius_n thus_o much_o for_o the_o profane_a title_n as_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o the_o scripture_n witness_v that_o solomon_n be_v king_n over_o 1._o all_o israel_n if_o over_o all_o israel_n then_o over_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n and_o consequent_o even_o over_o abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n if_o he_o be_v their_o king_n why_o be_v not_o they_o his_o subject_n if_o they_o be_v his_o subject_n and_o he_o their_o sovereign_n how_o can_v they_o be_v exempt_v from_o his_o jurisdiction_n a_o point_n so_o clear_a that_o sundry_a of_o your_o learned_a writer_n have_v confess_v it_o iohannes_n 19_o parisiensis_fw-la say_v that_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o priest_n which_o anoint_a 6._o king_n without_o all_o doubt_n be_v subject_a unto_o king_n your_o own_o jesuite_n 428_o salmeron_n affirm_v that_o potestas_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la legis_fw-la naturae_fw-la vel_fw-la moisisminor_n erat_fw-la regius_fw-la potestate_fw-la in_o veteri_fw-la testamento_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la etiam_fw-la summi_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la regibus_fw-la subdebantur_fw-la that_o be_v the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v lesser_a than_o the_o princely_a power_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n therefore_o even_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v subject_a unto_o king_n yea_o 25._o bellarmine_n himself_o say_v non_fw-la mirum_fw-la esset_fw-la si_fw-la in_o veteri_fw-la testamento_fw-la summa_fw-la potestas_fw-la fuisset_fw-la temporalis_fw-la that_o be_v it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o chief_a power_n be_v the_o temporal_a dominicus_n a_o 2._o soto_n in_o veteri_fw-la testamento_fw-la dubio_fw-la procul_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la a_o principibus_fw-la secularibus_fw-la iudicati_fw-la that_o be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n without_o doubt_n the_o priest_n be_v judge_v by_o the_o secular_a prince_n friar_n pauli_n paul_n this_o doctrine_n that_o ecclesiastical_a person_n unless_o they_o be_v free_a by_o privilege_n and_o favour_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o secular_a magistrate_n be_v demonstrate_v and_o confirm_v by_o example_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o the_o king_n do_v command_v judge_v and_o punish_v priest_n and_o that_o this_o be_v do_v not_o only_o of_o bad_a king_n or_o indifferent_a but_o of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o religious_a david_n solomon_n ezechias_n and_o josias_n primo_fw-la carerius_fw-la in_o veteri_fw-la testamento_fw-la rex_fw-la super_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la potestatem_fw-la habebat_fw-la eosque_fw-la pro_fw-la crimine_fw-la occidere_fw-la multo_fw-la magis_fw-la officijs_fw-la &_o dignitatibus_fw-la spiritualibus_fw-la eos_fw-la privare_fw-la poterat_fw-la that_o be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o king_n have_v power_n over_o the_o priest_n and_o may_v for_o their_o offence_n kill_v they_o much_o more_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o office_n and_o spiritual_a dignity_n hitherto_o carerius_fw-la out_o of_o spirituales_fw-la tostatus_n phil._n if_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n have_v such_o authority_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o 7._o christian_a prince_n must_v have_v the_o like_a orthod._n what_o else_o you_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v yield_v we_o no_o example_n of_o christian_a king_n therefore_o when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o power_n of_o king_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n we_o must_v go_v to_o the_o fountain_n that_o be_v the_o old_a testament_n where_o there_o be_v both_o a_o church_n and_o king_n in_o the_o church_n religious_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o king_n and_o what_o princely_a authority_n they_o exercise_v for_o which_o they_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o same_o without_o all_o question_n belong_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o christian_a prince_n therefore_o what_o authority_n solomon_n have_v over_o abiathar_n the_o same_o have_v christian_a prince_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n over_o their_o own_o clergy_n chap._n iii_o of_o the_o oath_n of_o the_o prince_n supremacy_n for_o deny_v whereof_o the_o old_a bishop_n be_v deprive_v phil._n be_v not_o the_o depose_n of_o a_o bishop_n a_o spiritual_a censure_n how_o then_o can_v it_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n orth._n the_o secular_a power_n do_v no●_n depose_v a_o bishop_n by_o degradation_n nor_o by_o utter_o debar_v he_o from_o his_o episcopal_a function_n but_o only_o by_o exclude_v he_o from_o the_o exercise_n of_o episcopallacte_n upon_o their_o subject_n and_o within_o their_o dominion_n and_o this_o godly_a prince_n have_v perform_v from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o the_o best_a and_o primative_a age_n against_o the_o arrian_n nestotians_n and_o other_o heretic_n as_o may_v be_v declare_v by_o many_o example_n phil._n shall_v a_o prince_n take_v that_o from_o they_o which_o he_o can_v give_v they_o orth._n he_o can_v give_v they_o a_o intrinsical_v power_n to_o minister_v the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o key_n of_o order_n but_o he_o may_v give_v they_o a_o extrinsecall_v power_n that_o be_v a_o liberty_n to_o execute_v their_o function_n within_o his_o dominion_n this_o he_o may_v do_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o sceptre_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o though_o he_o meddle_v not_o with_o the_o key_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o church_n and_o as_o he_o may_v give_v this_o liberty_n so_o he_o may_v take_v it_o away_o upon_o just_a cause_n as_o solomon_n do_v when_o he_o depose_v abiathar_n phil._n if_o we_o shall_v admit_v that_o queen_n elizabeth_n have_v so_o much_o authority_n as_o king_n solomon_n yet_o this_o will_v not_o justify_v her_o proceed_n for_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o parliament_n or_o secular_a prince_n to_o make_v law_n concern_v the_o deposition_n of_o bishop_n or_o to_o inflict_v any_o such_o punishment_n orthod._n do_v not_o the_o emperor_n 178._o martian_a make_v a_o law_n that_o such_o bishop_n as_o go_v about_o to_o infringe_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v enact_v by_o that_o holy_a and_o general_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n shall_v be_v depose_v do_v not_o sinem_fw-la justinian_n make_v a_o constitution_n that_o if_o any_o patriarch_n metropolitan_a bishop_n or_o clerk_n shall_v violate_v his_o decree_n make_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o holy_a order_n and_o estate_n he_o shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o priestly_a function_n do_v not_o saucimus_fw-la theodosius_n the_o young_a likewise_o make_v a_o law_n that_o the_o nestorian_a bishop_n shall_v be_v expel_v and_o depose_v phil._n the_o law_n of_o these_o emperor_n concern_v the_o depose_n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o put_v in_o execution_n by_o layman_n as_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v but_o by_o bishop_n orth._n 2._o gratian_n the_o emperor_n make_v a_o law_n against_o the_o arrian_n command_v they_o like_o wild_a beast_n to_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o church_n and_o the_o place_n to_o be_v restore_v to_o good_a pastor_n the_o execution_n whereof_o he_o commit_v to_o saporas_n the_o most_o famous_a captain_n of_o that_o time_n if_o this_o be_v allowable_a in_o the_o emperor_n gratian_n then_o much_o more_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n for_o he_o do_v it_o when_o there_o be_v plenty_n of_o good_a bishop_n within_o his_o own_o dominon_n queen_n elizabeth_n do_v it_o only_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n neither_o do_v she_o send_v a_o captain_n to_o drive_v they_o away_o by_o violence_n as_o gratian_n do_v but_o appoint_v honourable_a commissioner_n to_o tender_v the_o oath_n unto_o they_o upon_o the_o obstinate_a refusal_n whereof_o their_o place_n be_v void_a by_o virtue_n of_o the_o statute_n phil._n gratian_n have_v for_o he_o the_o determination_n of_o synod_n which_o have_v already_o 2_o condemn_v the_o arrian_n therefore_o in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o both_o to_o make_v a_o law_n and_o to_o commit_v the_o execution_n of_o it_o to_o layman_n orthod._n so_o have_v q._n elizabeth_n for_o a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n profess_v your_o own_o religion_n among_o who_o be_v john_n fisher_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n give_v to_o k._n henry_n the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o 11●_n synod_n itself_o about_o two_o year_n after_o the_o same_o be_v renew_v in_o another_o synod_n and_o about_o two_o year_n after_o that_o the_o two_o university_n deliver_v their_o judgement_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v in_o england_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n than_o any_o other_o bishop_n the_o determination_n of_o cambridge_n be_v already_o 〈…〉_z extant_a in_o print_n the_o like_a of_o oxeford_n remain_v in_o 〈…〉_z record_n wherein_o after_o long_a deliberation_n and_o much_o disputation_n with_o all_o diligence_n zeal_n and_o conscience_n they_o make_v this_o profession_n tandem_fw-la in_o hanc_fw-la sententiam_fw-la unanimiter_fw-la omnes_fw-la convenimus_fw-la ac_fw-la ●_z fuimus_fw-la viz._n romanum_n episcopum_fw-la maiorem_fw-la aliquam_fw-la iurisdictionem_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la sibi_fw-la à_fw-la d●o_fw-la collatam_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la in_fw-la
videtur_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o seem_v we_o may_v say_v see_v a_o abbot_n govern_v his_o monastery_n by_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n and_o a_o abbatesse_n be_v equal_a unto_o he_o in_o freedom_n of_o administration_n that_o she_o have_v ordinary_a jurisdiction_n as_o well_o as_o the_o abbot_n yea_o the_o same_o 151._o stephen_n strive_v to_o attibute_v unto_o she_o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n which_o be_v more_o than_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ascribe_v to_o prince_n for_o it_o attribute_v unto_o they_o 37._o only_o that_o prerogative_n which_o we_o see_v to_o have_v be_v give_v always_o to_o godly_a prince_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o god_n himself_o that_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v rule_v all_o estate_n and_o degree_n commit_v unto_o their_o charge_n by_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a and_o restrain_v with_o the_o civil_a sword_n the_o stubborn_a &_o evil_a doer_n when_o the_o b_o have_v use_v his_o spiritual_a censure_n he_o can_v proceed_v no_o further_o but_o as_o josias_n 33._o compel_v all_o that_o be_v find_v in_o israel_n to_o serve_v the_o lord_n so_o may_v every_o prince_n by_o his_o royal_a authority_n compel_v all_o his_o subject_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n and_o those_o which_o refuse_v to_o be_v reform_v by_o the_o church_n he_o may_v restrain_v with_o the_o civil_a sword_n inflict_v temporal_a punishment_n as_o the_o qualitity_n of_o the_o offence_n require_v when_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la be_v excommunicate_a and_o depose_v in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n he_o do_v notwithstanding_o hold_v his_o church_n and_o chair_n by_o violence_n whereupon_o the_o council_n know_v that_o of_o themselves_o they_o can_v proceed_v no_o further_o be_v force_v to_o seek_v the_o aid_n of_o aurelian_a the_o emperor_n by_o who_o commandment_n he_o be_v ●_o expel_v phil._n if_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o prelate_n be_v so_o different_a how_o then_o be_v the_o prelate_n derive_v from_o the_o prince_n orthod._n here_o we_o must_v consider_v the_o matter_n handle_v in_o the_o consistory_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o manner_n the_o matter_n original_o and_o natural_o belong_v to_o those_o court_n be_v only_o such_o as_o be_v original_o and_o natural_o ecclesiastical_a the_o manner_n to_o ratify_v their_o judgement_n be_v not_o proper_o under_o any_o corporal_a mulct_n but_o only_o by_o spiritual_a censure_n as_o suspension_n excommunication_n and_o such_o like_a in_o both_o which_o respect_n the_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n have_v be_v much_o enlarge_v by_o the_o favour_n and_o indulgence_n of_o christian_a prince_n concern_v the_o matter_n constantine_n the_o great_a give_v liberty_n to_o clerk_n to_o 4●_n decline_v the_o judgement_n of_o civil_a judge_n and_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n by_o occasion_n whereof_o many_o civil_a cause_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o cognisance_n of_o ecclesiastical_a court_n he_o make_v also_o a_o law_n to_o ratify_v those_o judgement_n 9_o as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o emperor_n himself_o now_o all_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o bishop_n have_v in_o civil_a cause_n be_v mere_o from_o the_o prince_n concern_v the_o manner_n it_o seem_v sometime_o expedient_a to_o annex_v coactive_a power_n to_o the_o episcopal_a office_n both_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o prelacy_n and_o also_o to_o make_v their_o spiritual_a censure_n the_o more_o regard_v which_o also_o without_o controversy_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o prince_n for_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v compact_v the_o light_n into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n that_o thence_o it_o may_v be_v communicate_v to_o moon_n and_o star_n so_o he_o have_v put_v all_o civil_a and_o coactive_a jurisdiction_n into_o the_o person_n of_o the_o prince_n from_o who_o as_o from_o a_o glorious_a sun_n or_o fountain_n all_o other_o inferior_a lamp_n do_v borrow_v their_o light_n but_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o that_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n which_o both_o in_o respect_n of_o matter_n and_o manner_n be_v mere_o spiritual_a the_o immediate_a fountain_n of_o it_o be_v god_n himself_o as_o our_o most_o learned_a and_o religious_a king_n with_o his_o royal_a pen_n have_v thus_o witness_v to_o the_o world_n 44._o that_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n i_o ever_o maintain_v it_o as_o a_o apostolic_a institution_n and_o so_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n contrary_a to_o the_o puritan_n and_o likewise_o to_o bellarmine_n who_o deny_v that_o bishop_n have_v their_o jurisdiction_n immediate_o from_o god_n if_o his_o majesty_n judgement_n be_v contrary_a to_o bellarmine_n who_o hold_v the_o negative_a than_o his_o princely_a wisdom_n embrace_v the_o affirmative_a to_o wit_n that_o bishop_n have_v their_o jurisdiction_n mere_o spiritual_a immediate_o from_o god_n notwithstanding_o for_o so_o much_o as_o they_o exercise_v the_o same_o in_o a_o christian_a common_a wealth_n at_o the_o holy_a direction_n and_o command_n and_o under_o the_o gracious_a protection_n of_o a_o religious_a king_n within_o the_o king_n dominion_n upon_o the_o king_n subject_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n and_o statute_n establish_v by_o the_o king_n authority_n we_o may_v just_o call_v those_o court_v the_o king_n ecclesiastical_a court_n and_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n the_o king_n ecclesiastical_a judge_n wherefore_o though_o this_o spiritual_a power_n in_o regard_n of_o itself_o be_v immediate_o from_o god_n yet_o in_o these_o respect_v it_o may_v right_o be_v say_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o king_n so_o it_o be_v a_o christo_fw-la tanquam_fw-la ab_fw-la authore_fw-la conferente_fw-la a_o rege_fw-la tanquam_fw-la a_o iubente_fw-la dirigente_fw-la promovente_fw-la &_o protegente_fw-la phil._n if_o your_o bishop_n have_v their_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n immediate_o from_o god_n when_o do_v they_o receive_v it_o ortho_n when_o they_o be_v 8._o make_v bishop_n that_o be_v in_o their_o consecration_n for_o the_o party_n to_o be_v consecrate_a be_v present_v to_o the_o archbishop_n in_o these_o word_n bishop_n most_o reverend_a father_n in_o god_n we_o present_v unto_o you_o this_o godly_a and_o well_o learned_a man_n to_o be_v consecrate_a bishop_n where_o the_o word_n bishop_n be_v take_v in_o the_o usual_a ecclesiastical_a sense_n for_o a_o timothy_n or_o a_o titus_n a_o angel_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o archbishop_n with_o other_o bishop_n present_n impose_v hand_n say_v f_o take_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o be_v such_o ghostly_a and_o spiritual_a power_n as_o be_v requisite_a to_o advance_v a_o presbyter_n to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n so_o here_o be_v give_v he_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o the_o episcopal_a office_n as_o the_o prayer_n go_v before_o the_o pronounce_v of_o these_o word_n and_o follow_v after_o do_v declare_v wherein_o humble_a petition_n be_v make_v for_o god_n blessing_n and_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v du_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n faithful_o serve_v therein_o and_o minister_v episcopal_a discipline_n phil._n if_o it_o be_v give_v in_o episcopal_a consecration_n how_o then_o be_v it_o give_v immediate_o from_o god_n orthod._n i_o will_v answer_v you_o if_o you_o will_v answer_v i_o a_o few_o question_n and_o first_o i_o demand_v whence_o be_v the_o power_n of_o order_n phil._n it_o be_v 2d_o immediate_o from_o god_n because_o it_o require_v a_o character_n and_o grace_n which_o only_o god_n can_v effect_v for_o though_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v with_o 14._o imposition_n of_o hand_n yet_o the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o either_o the_o imposer_n or_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n do_v give_v it_o but_o god_n himself_o while_o hand_n be_v impose_v to_o which_o purpose_n it_o be_v excellent_o say_v of_o 5._o s._n ambrose_n o_o brother_n who_o give_v the_o episcopal_a grace_n god_n or_o man_n thou_o answer_v without_o doubt_n god_n but_o yet_o god_n give_v it_o by_o man_n man_n impose_v hand_n god_n give_v the_o grace_n the_o priest_n impose_v a_o humble_a hand_n and_o god_n bless_v with_o a_o mighty_a hand_n orthod._n and_o whence_o come_v the_o grace_n of_o baptism_n phil._n this_o also_o without_o question_n be_v immediate_o from_o god_n orthod._n and_o whence_o come_v faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o gospel_n phil._n it_o be_v likewise_o immediate_o from_o god_n orthod._n and_o do_v not_o god_n in_o all_o these_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o man_n phil._n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o it_o orthod._n then_o you_o see_v a_o thing_n may_v be_v give_v immediate_o from_o god_n though_o in_o give_v it_o he_o use_v the_o mean_n and_o ministry_n of_o man_n for_o in_o such_o like_a speech_n the_o word_n immediate_o be_v not_o so_o take_v as_o exclude_v mean_n but_o as_o distinguish_v the_o action_n of_o god_n from_o the_o mean_n when_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v sting_v of_o the_o fiery_a 9_o serpent_n god_n in_o heal_v they_o use_v the_o
only_o two_o bishop_n will_v not_o suffer_v those_o two_o to_o consecrate_v a_o three_o but_o will_v they_o to_o proceed_v to_o a_o election_n and_o send_v the_o party_n elect_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v consecrate_v by_o three_o ortho_n the_o presence_n of_o three_o when_o they_o may_v convenient_o be_v have_v we_o great_o commend_v yet_o not_o as_o a_o commandment_n of_o god_n but_o as_o a_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v embrace_v of_o congruity_n and_o not_o of_o necessity_n phil._n yes_o of_o necessity_n and_o that_o both_o necessitate_v precepti_fw-la by_o the_o necessity_n 4._o of_o a_o command_n which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v because_o as_o 126._o anicetus_n say_v instituente_fw-la domino_fw-la sieri_fw-la iubetur_fw-la it_o be_v command_v to_o be_v do_v the_o lord_n so_o appoint_v and_o also_o necessitate_v medij_fw-la as_o a_o necessary_a mean_n necessary_a i_o say_v not_o only_o add_v be_v esse_fw-la to_o the_o well_o performance_n of_o the_o consecration_n but_o also_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la to_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o so_o that_o without_o it_o there_o be_v a_o nullity_n for_o first_o of_o all_o this_o be_v the_o general_a iugdement_n of_o the_o jurist_n as_o appear_v by_o those_o word_n of_o cardinal_n 492._o turrecremata_fw-la juristae_n quasi_fw-la omnes_fw-la sunt_fw-la huius_fw-la opinionis_fw-la quod_fw-la requiratur_fw-la ternarius_fw-la numerus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la a_o paucioribus_fw-la consecretur_fw-la dicatur_fw-la nihil_fw-la agi_fw-la that_o be_v almost_o all_o the_o jurist_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o number_n of_o three_o bishop_n be_v so_o require_v that_o if_o one_o be_v consecrate_v by_o few_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v which_o judgement_n of_o the_o jurist_n prevail_v with_o most_o eminent_a canonist_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n follow_v in_o the_o cardinal_n vnde_fw-la hugo_n &_o archidiaconus_fw-la dicunt_fw-la ut_fw-la papa_n solus_fw-la cum_fw-la uno_fw-la episcopo_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n consecrare_fw-la hac_fw-la forma_fw-la durante_fw-la that_o be_v whereupon_o hugo_n and_o the_o archdeacon_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n alone_o with_o one_o bishop_n can_v consecrate_v so_o long_o as_o this_o form_n endure_v the_o word_n of_o the_o archdeacon_n be_v these_o 88_o est_fw-la ergo_fw-la de_fw-fr forma_fw-la &_o substantia_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la quod_fw-la ibi_fw-la sint_fw-la tres_fw-la episcopi_fw-la &_o si_fw-la ordinetur_fw-la a_o minus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la episcopus_fw-la quia_fw-la deest_fw-la substantia_fw-la sive_fw-la forma_fw-la qu●_n exigitur_fw-la in_o collatione_fw-la illius_fw-la ordinis_fw-la that_o be_v therefore_o it_o be_v of_o the_o form_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o there_o be_v three_o bishop_n and_o if_o one_o be_v ordain_v of_o less_o he_o be_v no_o bishop_n because_o the_o substance_n or_o form_n require_v in_o the_o collation_n of_o that_o order_n be_v want_v moreover_o whereas_o in_o the_o second_o 537._o counsel_n at_o arles_n it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o metropolitan_a shall_v not_o presume_v to_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n without_o three_o of_o his_o provincial_a bishop_n which_o the_o canon_n epis._n law_n aleadge_v three_o or_o two_o that_o be_v three_o with_o the_o metropolitan_a or_o two_o beside_o he_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o word_n three_o say_v thus_o quod_fw-la dicit_fw-la tribus_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la substantia_fw-la consecrationis_fw-la alius_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la consecratꝰ_n ●iessent_n pauciores_fw-la that_o be_v whereas_o the_o council_n say_v three_o it_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o consecration_n otherwise_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v consecrate_v if_o there_o be_v few_o ortho_n be_v this_o the_o judgement_n of_o your_o jesuit_n phil._n father_n turrian_n speak_v of_o the_o metropolitan_a 5._o and_o two_o bishop_n assistant_n say_v 7●_n he_o sunt_fw-la tres_fw-la prorsus_fw-la necessarij_fw-la these_o be_v three_o altogether_o necessary_a and_o 11._o elsewhere_o he_o produce_v this_o say_n of_o 502._o damasus_n quod_fw-la episcopi_fw-la non_fw-la sint_fw-la qui_fw-la minus_fw-la quam_fw-la a_o tribus_fw-la ordinati_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la patet_fw-la quoniam_fw-la prohibitum_fw-la est_fw-la a_o sanctis_fw-la patribus_fw-la ut_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la uno_fw-la vela_fw-la duobus_fw-la ordinati_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopis_fw-la neque_fw-la nominentur_fw-la episcopi_fw-la si_fw-la nomen_fw-la non_fw-la habent_fw-la qualiter_fw-la officium_fw-la habebunt_fw-la that_o be_v it_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o man_n that_o they_o be_v no_o bishop_n which_o be_v ordain_v of_o less_o than_o three_o bishop_n because_o the_o holy_a father_n forbid_v that_o such_o as_o be_v ordain_v of_o one_o or_o two_o bishop_n shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o be_v call_v bishop_n if_o they_o have_v not_o the_o name_n how_o shall_v they_o have_v the_o office_n and_o he_o infer_v this_o conclusion_n in_o the_o word_n of_o damasus_n quare_fw-la quicquid_fw-la inter_fw-la episcopos_fw-la aut_fw-la de_fw-la rebus_fw-la solummodo_fw-la adeos_fw-la pertinentibus_fw-la egerint_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la irritum_fw-la fiat_fw-la quia_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la habent_fw-la dare_v non_fw-la possunt_fw-la that_o be_v wherefore_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v do_v among_o bishop_n or_o concern_v thing_n belong_v only_o to_o bishop_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v void_a because_o they_o can_v give_v that_o to_o another_o which_o they_o have_v not_o themselves_o whereupon_o he_o account_v your_o bishop_n no_o bishop_n your_o minister_n no_o minister_n your_o ordination_n no_o ordination_n ord_n nec_fw-la enim_fw-la schismaticae_fw-la ordinationes_fw-la sunt_fw-la sed_fw-la nullae_fw-la penitus_fw-la ac_fw-la potius_fw-la meré_fw-la laicae_fw-la for_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o schismatical_a ordination_n but_o no_o ordination_n at_o all_o and_o mere_a laic_a ortho_n what_o say_v bellarmine_n to_o this_o matter_n for_o he_o be_v the_o noble_a and_o renown_a jesuite_n though_o now_o he_o have_v change_v his_o habit_n for_o a_o red_a hat_n phil._n he_o say_v quart●_n nostri_fw-la temporis_fw-la haeretici_fw-la neutrum_fw-la habent_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la ordinationem_fw-la nec_fw-la successionem_fw-la &_o propterea_fw-la longé_fw-fr inverecundiús_fw-la quam_fw-la ulli_fw-la unquam_fw-la haeretici_fw-la sibi_fw-la nomen_fw-la &_o munus_fw-la episcopi_fw-la usurpant_fw-la i._n the_o heretic_n of_o our_o time_n have_v neither_o that_o be_v neither_o ordination_n nor_o succession_n and_o therefore_o they_o usurp_v unto_o themselves_o the_o name_n and_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n far_o more_o immodest_o than_o ever_o do_v any_o other_o heretic_n the_o ground_n of_o which_o assertion_n as_o may_v appear_v both_o by_o the_o antecedent_n and_o consequent_n be_v because_o they_o be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o three_o ortho_n do_v he_o not_o allow_v a_o consecration_n by_o few_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n phil._n it_o can_v be_v doubt_v say_v he_o ad_fw-la but_o ordinary_o three_o bishop_n be_v require_v to_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o new_a bishop_n unless_o peradventure_o by_o dispensation_n with_o one_o bishop_n ordain_v there_o be_v present_a two_o mitre_a abbot_n which_o may_v supply_v the_o place_n of_o bishop_n as_o it_o use_v sometime_o to_o be_v do_v ob_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la raritatem_fw-la for_o the_o scarcity_n of_o bishop_n hitherto_o bellarmine_n to_o which_o 14._o binius_fw-la add_v aliamue_fw-la iustam_fw-la causam_fw-la or_o for_o any_o other_o just_a cause_n ortho_n by_o who_o dispensation_n must_v this_o be_v phillip_n ibidem_fw-la binius_fw-la say_v per_fw-la summi_fw-la pontificis_fw-la dispensationem_fw-la by_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n ortho_n if_o there_o be_v neither_o three_o nor_o two_o nor_o any_o abbot_n assist_v nor_o yet_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n what_o be_v then_o the_o judgement_n of_o bellarmine_n phil._n you_o shall_v hear_v himself_o speak_v que_fw-fr from_o which_o a_o insoluble_a argument_n be_v take_v in_o this_o manner_n a_o church_n can_v be_v without_o bishop_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v among_o the_o lutheran_n there_o be_v no_o bishop_n for_o they_o have_v no_o ordination_n nor_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o among_o they_o there_o be_v no_o church_n and_o very_o that_o neither_o luther_n who_o be_v account_v bishop_n of_o wittenberg_n nor_o zuinglius_fw-la who_o be_v repute_v bishop_n of_o tigur_n nor_o oecolampadius_n who_o in_o the_o very_a epitaph_n upon_o his_o grave_n be_v call_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o basill_n nor_o calvin_n who_o be_v call_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o geneva_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o they_o be_v ordain_v of_o three_o bishop_n nor_o of_o one_o by_o dispensation_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o abbot_n be_v a_o thing_n notorious_o know_v neither_o do_v they_o deny_v it_o therefore_o these_o be_v no_o bishop_n at_o least_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o nicen_n and_o carthaginian_a council_n yea_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o who_o have_v decree_v that_o a_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v ordain_v by_o three_o bishop_n thus_o bellarmine_n be_v clear_o of_o opinion_n that_o a_o bishop_n must_v either_o be_v ordain_v of_o three_o or_o have_v assistance_n
prosecute_v a_o unanswerable_a argument_n every_o true_a bishop_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v consecrate_a by_o 3._o bishop_n at_o the_o least_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n be_v not_o so_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n be_v no_o true_a bishop_n orthod._n the_o bishop_n of_o england_n be_v so_o as_o in_o due_a place_n shall_v appear_v and_o if_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n they_o be_v not_o so_o what_o then_o the_o presence_n of_o 3._o be_v require_v only_o to_o the_o well-being_n not_o simple_o to_o the_o be_v it_o be_v no_o essential_a part_n of_o episcopal_a consecration_n but_o a_o accidental_a ornament_n a_o comely_a complement_n of_o singular_a conveniency_n no_o substantial_a point_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n chap._n four_o wherein_o the_o popish_a argument_n draw_v from_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n be_v propose_v urge_v and_o answer_v phil._n i_o will_v prove_v the_o contrary_a by_o sundry_a argument_n and_o first_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v collect_v and_o set_v out_o by_o clemens_n saint_n peter_n scholar_n orth._n if_o those_o canon_n be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o to_o blame_v for_o the_o 84._o canon_n allow_v the_o 3._o book_n of_o maccabecs_n as_o also_o 2._o epistle_n of_o clemens_n and_o his_o eight_o book_n of_o constitution_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n reject_v again_o it_o omit_v the_o son_n of_o sidrach_n wisdom_n and_o diverse_a other_o which_o your_o church_n embrace_v for_o canonical_a phil._n it_o seem_v probable_a say_v 20._o bellarmine_n that_o this_o canon_n be_v not_o set_v out_o by_o clemens_n yea_o it_o be_v apocryphus_n and_o surreptitius_fw-la as_o be_v affirm_v by_o 15._o binius_fw-la orth._n what_o say_v you_o then_o to_o the_o 65._o canon_n which_o forbid_v to_o fast_v upon_o the_o saturday_n except_v one_o only_o that_o be_v as_o 17._o binius_fw-la declare_v the_o paschall_n saturday_n phil._n i_o say_v with_o 15._o baronius_n it_o be_v counterfeit_n orth._n but_o what_o say_v you_o to_o pope_n romana_fw-la gelasius_n who_o in_o a_o council_n at_o rome_n of_o 70._o bishop_n sai_z libre_fw-la canonum_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la apocryphus_n the_o book_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v apocryphal_a and_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o call_v it_o apocryphal_a be_v expound_v by_o bellarmine_n 20._o eos_n libros_fw-la vocat_fw-la apocryphos_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la aediti_fw-la ab_fw-la auctoribus_fw-la haereticis_fw-la vel_fw-la certè_fw-la suspectis_fw-la gelasius_n call_v those_o book_n apocryphal_a which_o be_v set_v out_o by_o such_o author_n as_o be_v either_o heretical_a or_o at_o least_o suspect_v phil._n gelasius_n do_v not_o call_v the_o book_n apocryphal_a as_o though_o all_o the_o canon_n therein_o contain_v be_v apocryphal_a but_o as_o ibidem_fw-la bellarmine_n think_v propter_fw-la aliquos_fw-la vel_fw-la corruptos_fw-la vel_fw-la additos_fw-la ab_fw-la haeret●cis_fw-la that_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o some_o which_o be_v either_o corrupt_v or_o add_v by_o heretic_n of_o which_o stamp_n be_v those_o two_o which_o you_o allege_v but_o the_o first_o 50._o contain_v nothing_o but_o apostolic_a and_o orthodox_n doctrine_n approve_v of_o ancient_a pope_n counsel_n and_o father_n velut_fw-la authentici_fw-la recipiuntur_fw-la be_v receive_v as_o authentical_a say_v 14._o binius_fw-la orth._n pope_n 134._o zephirine_n allow_v 70._o or_o at_o least_o 60._o for_o there_o be_v diverse_a reading_n how_o do_v this_o agree_v phil._n well_o enough_o for_o pope_n zephirine_n speak_v not_o of_o canon_n but_o of_o sentence_n and_o you_o must_v know_v that_o those_o 60_o or_o 70._o sentence_n be_v all_o contain_v in_o the_o 50._o canon_n as_o 134._o binius_fw-la affirm_v out_o of_o father_n 20._o turrian_n orthod._n supra_fw-la bellarmine_n expound_v these_o sentence_n to_o be_v so_o many_o canon_n in_o these_o word_n zephirine_n the_o fifteen_o from_o peter_n deliver_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n that_o there_o be_v only_o 70._o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n phil._n pope_n clem._n leo_n allow_v only_o fifty_o apostolorum_fw-la canon_n numerant_fw-la patres_fw-la inter_fw-la apochrypha_fw-la exceptis_fw-la 50._o capitulis_fw-la the_o father_n do_v reckon_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n among_o apocryphal_a write_n except_v fifty_o chapter_n by_o which_o he_o mean_v fifty_o 14_o canon_n ortho_n then_o to_o pass_v over_o the_o five_o canon_n forbid_v a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n to_o cast_v off_o his_o wife_n under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n as_o also_o the_o one_o and_o thirtith_n inhibit_v all_o other_o bishop_n to_o restore_v a_o priest_n or_o deacon_n excommunicate_v by_o his_o own_o bishop_n what_o can_v you_o possible_o say_v to_o the_o nine_o which_o excommunicate_v all_o those_o which_o be_v present_a at_o the_o communion_n do_v not_o communicate_v concern_v which_o canonem_fw-la binius_fw-la be_v force_v to_o confess_v totum_fw-la hoc_fw-la decretum_fw-la non_fw-la divine_a sed_fw-la humano_fw-la jure_fw-la constitutum_fw-la iam_fw-la contraria_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la est_fw-la abrogatum_fw-la that_o be_v this_o whole_a decree_n be_v make_v not_o by_o law_n divine_a but_o humane_a be_v now_o abrogate_a by_o a_o contrary_a custom_n and_o allege_v for_o he_o bellarmine_n zuarez_n and_o turrian_n which_o be_v a_o notable_a acknowledgement_n that_o such_o a_o canon_n as_o you_o account_v apostolical_a and_o authentical_a may_v not_o withstand_v be_v abrogate_a but_o not_o to_o stand_v upon_o these_o and_o the_o like_a exception_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o the_o canon_n say_v concern_v the_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n phil._n the_o word_n be_v these_o let_v primus_fw-la a_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v of_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n 2_o ortho_n do_v the_o canon_n require_v two_o or_o three_o then_o ordination_n by_o two_o be_v canonical_a as_o well_o as_o by_o three_o phil._n not_o so_o for_o the_o canon_n mean_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o or_o three_o assistant_n beside_o the_o metropolitan_a as_o be_v declare_v by_o cardinal_n 8._o bellarmine_n and_o father_n 4._o turrian_n orthod._n the_o canon_n say_v not_o two_o or_o three_o assistant_n but_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n neither_o have_v it_o this_o clause_n beside_o the_o metropolitan_a but_o pronounce_v simple_o let_v a_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n wherefore_o the_o canon_n be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o presence_n of_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o your_o own_o 68_o pamelius_n who_o say_v that_o conseration_n or_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v per_fw-la episcopos_fw-la qui_fw-la convenerant_fw-la quos_fw-la ut_fw-la minimum_fw-la duos_fw-la esse_fw-la oportebat_fw-la i._o by_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v assemble_v which_o shall_v be_v two_o at_o the_o least_o where_o note_n that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v the_o bishop_n assistant_n but_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v shall_v be_v two_o at_o the_o least_o this_o also_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr 493._o turrecremata_fw-la who_o urge_v this_o very_a canon_n against_o your_o position_n and_o prove_v by_o it_o that_o three_o be_v not_o necessary_a neither_o be_v the_o presence_n of_o two_o require_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n if_o you_o 3_o will_v believe_v the_o apostolic_a constitution_n of_o clemens_n a_o book_n which_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o will_v not_o once_o name_v but_o only_o that_o your_o chief_a champion_n do_v so_o 3_o common_o allege_v it_o wherefore_o as_o saint_n 28_o paul_n cite_v a_o poet_n against_o the_o athenian_n so_o let_v i_o cite_v this_o book_n against_o you_o which_o so_o high_o esteem_v it_o 27._o i_o simon_n of_o chanany_n appoint_v by_o how_o many_o bishop_n a_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v ordain_v to_o wit_n by_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n but_o if_o any_o shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o one_o bishop_n let_v both_o the_o ordain_v and_o the_o ordainer_n be_v depose_v but_o if_o necessity_n shall_v compel_v to_o be_v ordain_v by_o one_o because_o many_o can_v be_v present_a for_o persecution_n or_o some_o other_o cause_n let_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o commission_n of_o many_o bishop_n be_v produce_v if_o this_o authority_n be_v of_o credit_n than_o you_o be_v confute_v for_o it_o allow_v consecration_n by_o one_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n phil._n but_o that_o one_o must_v have_v the_o commission_n of_o many_o orthod._n the_o commission_n be_v only_o for_o concord_n sake_n and_o to_o avoid_v schism_n for_o the_o ea_fw-la absent_a can_v impose_v hand_n nor_o give_v the_o power_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o ordain_v though_o they_o consent_v to_o the_o ordination_n which_o be_v perform_v by_o he_o only_o that_o be_v present_a now_o if_o in_o any_o case_n a_o bishop_n may_v be_v ordain_v by_o one_o and_o yet_o be_v a_o true_a bishop_n than_o the_o presence_n of_o more_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o conveniency_n and_o not_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o if_o you_o think_v that_o these_o
labour_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o imposition_n of_o hand_n the_o ancient_a writer_n term_v ordination_n use_v the_o word_n large_o and_o improper_o but_o if_o we_o shall_v imagine_v that_o he_o be_v proper_o ordain_v what_o can_v be_v collect_v thereupon_o phil._n that_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o pattern_n to_o all_o posterity_n as_o appear_v 5_o by_o the_o authority_n before_o allege_v and_o consequent_o that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o be_v ordain_v by_o few_o than_o three_o orthod._n there_o may_v be_v a_o fair_a pattern_n and_o yet_o posterity_n may_v sometime_o want_v mean_n to_o imitate_v that_o pattern_n when_o the_o number_n may_v be_v have_v we_o great_o commend_v it_o when_o it_o can_v then_o both_o this_o and_o all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n must_v yield_v to_o necessity_n phil._n the_o contrary_n be_v manifest_a by_o the_o word_n of_o 2._o an●cletus_n a_o petro_n jacobo_n &_o johanne_n apostolis_n est_fw-la ordinatus_fw-la successoribus_fw-la dantibus_fw-la formam_fw-la eorum_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la quam_fw-la à_fw-la tribus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la reliquisque_fw-la omnibus_fw-la assensum_fw-la praebentibus_fw-la ullatenus_fw-la ordinetur_fw-la episcopus_fw-la wherefore_o a_o bishop_n must_v not_o be_v ordain_v vllatenus_fw-la by_o any_o mean_n or_o in_o any_o respect_n by_o few_o than_o three_o and_o consequent_o not_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n be_v not_o this_o to_o make_v the_o number_n of_o three_o a_o substantial_a point_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n orthod._n the_o same_o word_n in_o effect_n be_v use_v about_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o archbishop_n archiepiscopus_fw-la archiepiscopus_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la suae_fw-la provinciae_fw-la episcopis_fw-la ordinetur_fw-la hoc_fw-la autem_fw-la nullatenus_fw-la liceat_fw-la immutare_fw-la that_o be_v let_v a_o archbishop_n be_v ordain_v of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o province_n and_o let_v it_o by_o no_o mean_n be_v lawful_a to_o change_v this_o where_o this_o word_n nullatenus_fw-la do_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o be_v substantial_a as_o be_v confess_v by_o cardinal_n 493._o turrecremata_fw-la phil._n you_o must_v mark_v what_o follow_v sin_n aliter_fw-la praesumptum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la viribus_fw-la career_n non_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la irrita_fw-la erit_fw-la secus_fw-la acta_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la i._o if_o the_o action_n shall_v be_v otherwise_o do_v through_o presumption_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o it_o want_v validity_n because_o the_o ordination_n otherwise_o perform_v shall_v be_v void_a orthod._n it_o shall_v be_v void_a but_o how_o quoad_fw-la officij_fw-la executionem_fw-la say_v the_o archiep._n gloss_n i._n according_a to_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o office_n whereupon_o ibidem_fw-la hugo_n say_v episcopus_fw-la tamen_fw-la erit_fw-la licet_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la non_fw-la consecretur_fw-la sed_fw-la repelletur_fw-la ab_fw-la officio_fw-la episcopali_fw-la nisi_fw-la dispensetur_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la i._o yet_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o bishop_n although_o he_o be_v not_o consecrate_a of_o all_o but_o he_o shall_v be_v repel_v for_o his_o presumption_n from_o the_o episcopal_a office_n unless_o he_o be_v dispense_v withal_o wherefore_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o hugo_n the_o ordination_n be_v not_o void_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o power_n but_o the_o church_n may_v make_v it_o void_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o execution_n and_o yet_o upon_o his_o repentance_n he_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o execution_n not_o by_o a_o new_a ordination_n but_o by_o dispensation_n which_o prove_v that_o the_o transgression_n be_v not_o substantial_a but_o accidental_a phil._n 502._o damasus_n say_v it_o be_v apparent_a to_o all_o man_n that_o they_o be_v no_o bishop_n which_o be_v ordain_v of_o few_o than_o three_o because_o it_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o they_o which_o be_v ordain_v of_o one_o or_o two_o bishop_n shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o be_v name_v bishop_n if_o they_o have_v not_o the_o name_n how_o shall_v they_o have_v the_o office_n wherefore_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v do_v among_o bishop_n necesse_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la irritum_fw-la fiat_fw-la i._n it_o must_v needs_o be_v void_a quia_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la habent_fw-la dare_v non_fw-la possunt_fw-la i._o because_o they_o can_v give_v that_o which_o they_o have_v not_o ortho_n your_o own_o supra_fw-la cardinal_n shall_v answer_v you_o wheresoever_o say_v he_o it_o can_v be_v find_v that_o a_o ordination_n be_v void_a and_o of_o no_o validity_n because_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o few_o then_o by_o three_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v non_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la veritatem_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la sed_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la executionem_fw-la officij_fw-la i._n not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o office_n and_o true_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o he_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o honourable_a office_n in_o the_o church_n which_o presumptuous_o break_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o the_o church_n may_v just_o repel_v they_o from_o execution_n but_o can_v take_v away_o their_o power_n which_o they_o have_v in_o themselves_o and_o have_v power_n to_o imprint_v in_o other_o yet_o while_o they_o have_v it_o without_o the_o church_n approbation_n they_o can_v give_v it_o with_o the_o church_n approbation_n and_o while_o they_o stand_v in_o opposition_n the_o church_n esteem_v the_o order_n they_o give_v as_o no_o order_n yet_o be_v they_o true_a order_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o the_o church_n restrain_v the_o execution_n of_o they_o as_o though_o they_o be_v none_o for_o order_n and_o discipline_n sake_n yet_o as_o you_o hear_v before_o even_o in_o case_n of_o presumption_n the_o church_n may_v dispense_v upon_o due_a consideration_n and_o consequent_o receive_v into_o her_o bosom_n such_o as_o be_v ordain_v in_o schism_n and_o let_v they_o enjoy_v both_o their_o order_n and_o honour_n but_o when_o the_o defect_n spring_v neither_o from_o schism_n nor_o heresy_n from_o presumption_n nor_o singularity_n but_o only_o from_o urgent_a necessity_n there_o be_v no_o voluntary_a violation_n necessity_n itself_o be_v a_o sufficient_a dispensation_n and_o this_o must_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o damasus_n or_o else_o ●f_a you_o urge_v from_o his_o word_n a_o absolute_a nullity_n you_o will_v make_v he_o condradict_v both_o the_o position_n and_o practice_n of_o your_o own_o church_n as_o 7._o hereafter_o shall_v be_v declare_v chap._n v._n wherein_o their_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o counsel_n be_v propound_v urge_v and_o answer_v phil._n the_o contrary_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o counsel_n and_o i_o hope_v as_o in_o all_o other_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o you_o so_o in_o this_o you_o shall_v be_v present_o confound_v by_o they_o i_o will_v begin_v with_o that_o first_o famous_a general_a 4._o council_n of_o nice_a ortho_n indeed_o a_o vain_a 4._o jesuite_n cry_v concilia_fw-la generalia_fw-la mea_fw-la sunt_fw-la primum_fw-la ultimum_fw-la media_fw-la that_o be_v all_o general_a counsel_n be_v i_o the_o first_o the_o last_o and_o the_o middle_n for_o trial_n whereof_o let_v we_o take_v a_o little_a view_n of_o this_o nicen_n council_n wherein_o you_o so_o glory_n and_o first_o concern_v that_o very_a canon_n which_o you_o produce_v against_o we_o as_o though_o we_o do_v transgress_v it_o we_o may_v just_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v as_o well_o observe_v it_o as_o ever_o do_v any_o church_n upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v indeed_o transgress_v it_o in_o which_o sometime_o one_o bishop_n alone_o do_v consecrate_v a_o bishop_n two_o abbot_n supply_v the_o place_n of_o the_o other_o two_o bishop_n as_o 8._o bellarmine_n confess_v second_o according_a to_o the_o nicen_n canon_n the_o power_n to_o confirm_v bishop_n belong_v to_o the_o 4._o metropolitan_a of_o the_o province_n without_o who_o approbation_n whosoever_o be_v ordain_v a_o bishop_n the_o nicen_n father_n account_n for_o no_o bishop_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n allow_v he_o who_o the_o pope_n allow_v though_o he_o be_v not_o allow_v by_o his_o metropolitan_a and_o disallow_v he_o who_o the_o pope_n disallow_v though_o he_o be_v lawful_o allow_v by_o his_o metropolitan_a three_o the_o nicen_n 5._o canon_n forbid_v that_o any_o bishop_n shall_v absolve_v they_o which_o be_v excommunicate_a by_o another_o bishop_n but_o the_o pope_n will_v open_v and_o shut_v bind_v and_o loose_v at_o his_o pleasure_n four_o the_o nicen_n canon_n appoint_v that_o old_a 6._o custom_n shall_v be_v keep_v and_o namely_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v have_v the_o pre-eminence_n in_o egypt_n lybya_n and_o pentapolis_n because_o such_o also_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o likewise_o that_o in_o antioch_n and_o other_o province_n the_o church_n shall_v enjoy_v their_o dignity_n and_o prerogative_n which_o word_n in_o all_o reason_n import_v that_o every_o metropolitan_a shall_v have_v pre-eminence_n
nicolas_n heath_n who_o queen_n mary_n make_v archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o gardiner_n lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o thurlby_n who_o queen_n mary_n translate_v from_o norwich_n to_o ely_n for_o all_o these_o be_v consecrate_v at_o such_o time_n when_o in_o your_o judgement_n both_o the_o consecrator_n and_o consecrate_a be_v stain_v with_o schism_n and_o heresy_n do_v all_o these_o receive_v nothing_o because_o their_o consecrator_n have_v nothing_o to_o give_v if_o they_o be_v no_o bishop_n than_o what_o become_v of_o the_o bishop_n in_o queen_n mary_n reign_n who_o these_o do_v consecrate_v if_o they_o all_o receive_v nothing_o than_o you_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o priest_n who_o they_o ordain_v be_v no_o priest_n if_o they_o be_v no_o priest_n then_o though_o they_o use_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n they_o can_v not_o consecrate_v the_o host_n if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o all_o that_o worship_v the_o host_n which_o they_o do_v consecrate_v be_v idolatour_n phil._n edmond_n bonner_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v reverend_a and_o canonical_a whatsoever_o you_o esteem_v of_o they_o orth._n can_v there_o be_v a_o bishop_n without_o effectual_a consecration_n phil._n it_o be_v impossible_a ortho_n and_o other_o consecration_n they_o have_v none_o but_o that_o which_o we_o have_v mention_v for_o i_o hope_v they_o be_v not_o reordain_v in_o queen_n mary_n time_n phil._n reordain_v i_o do_v not_o think_v so_o for_o as_o rebaptization_n so_o reordination_n be_v forbid_v in_o the_o council_n of_o 74._o capua_n and_o 32._o gregory_n say_v as_o he_o which_o be_v once_o baptize_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v again_o so_o he_o which_o be_v once_o consecrate_a ought_v not_o to_o be_v consecrate_a again_o in_o the_o same_o order_n therefore_o undoubted_o they_o be_v not_o reordain_v but_o cardinal_n poole_n the_o pope_n legate_n absolve_v they_o from_o schism_n and_o heresy_n so_o they_o be_v confirm_v for_o lawful_a bishop_n 260._o orthod._n you_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v a_o bishop_n without_o effectual_a consecration_n therefore_o see_v they_o have_v no_o other_o consecration_n but_o that_o mention_a and_o yet_o be_v bishop_n it_o follow_v that_o their_o consecration_n be_v effectual_a wherefore_o you_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o if_o a_o schismatical_a and_o heretical_a bishop_n give_v order_n the_o order_n be_v effectual_a but_o least_o this_o conclusion_n shall_v seem_v to_o flow_v rather_o from_o the_o affection_n you_o bear_v to_o your_o own_o bishop_n then_o from_o any_o force_n of_o reason_n especial_o your_o own_o allegation_n stand_v still_o to_o the_o contrary_a let_v we_o review_v the_o whole_a matter_n and_o proceed_v by_o degree_n balance_v every_o thing_n with_o advice_n and_o judgement_n and_o answer_v i_o pray_v you_o not_o out_o of_o private_a humour_n and_o passion_n but_o from_o the_o public_a and_o most_o authentical_a record_n of_o your_o church_n and_o first_o if_o a_o wicked_a priest_n as_o for_o example_n a_o drunkard_n fornicator_n or_o 2_o blasphemer_n baptize_v a_o child_n i_o demand_v whether_o the_o baptism_n be_v good_a or_o no_o phil._n if_o it_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o true_a element_n of_o water_n with_o evangelicall_a word_n that_o be_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n holy_a institution_n it_o be_v sound_a and_o sufficient_a and_o never_o to_o be_v iterate_v as_o our_o learned_a pope_n counsel_n and_o father_n allege_v by_o cardinal_n 26._o bellarmine_n do_v testify_v for_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o minister_n can_v pollute_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n they_o be_v available_a to_o his_o child_n though_o they_o be_v minister_v by_o a_o judas_n for_o it_o be_v well_o say_v of_o our_o learned_a minorem_fw-la cardinal_n that_o he_o which_o have_v not_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n formal_o may_v have_v it_o ministerial_o as_o he_o that_o have_v not_o in_o his_o purse_n one_o halfpenny_n of_o his_o own_o may_v notwithstanding_o carry_v many_o crown_n to_o another_o from_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n ortho_n very_o true_a for_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o preach_v may_v be_v extend_v to_o other_o ministerial_a duty_n if_o 17_o i_o do_v it_o willing_o i_o have_v a_o reward_n but_o if_o i_o do_v it_o against_o my_o will_n notwithstanding_o the_o dispensation_n be_v commit_v unto_o i_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o i_o do_v it_o willing_o that_o be_v cheerful_o for_o conscience_n sake_n seek_v only_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n than_o there_o be_v a_o reward_n lay_v up_o for_o i_o but_o if_o i_o shall_v perform_v it_o unwilling_o that_o be_v for_o fear_n covetousness_n vain_a glory_n or_o any_o other_o carnal_a respect_n though_o to_o myself_o it_o be_v not_o profitable_a because_o i_o lose_v my_o reward_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v available_a to_o other_o because_o the_o dispensation_n be_v commit_v unto_o i_o the_o foulness_n of_o a_o unsanctified_a hand_n can_v stain_v the_o beauty_n of_o these_o glorious_a mystery_n for_o as_o 40._o gregory_n nazianzen_n say_v a_o seal_n of_o iron_n may_v imprint_v the_o prince_n image_n as_o well_o as_o a_o signet_n of_o gold_n and_o we_o know_v by_o experience_n that_o a_o garden_n may_v as_o well_o be_v water_v with_o a_o earthen_a as_o with_o a_o silver_n pipe_n but_o what_o if_o the_o priest_n we_o speak_v of_o be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o heretic_n phil._n though_o he_o be_v yet_o if_o he_o baptize_v according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n the_o baptism_n be_v effectual_a and_o never_o to_o be_v repeat_v orthod._n you_o say_v well_o for_o in_o such_o a_o case_n though_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o heretic_n and_o schismatics_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatickes_n but_o of_o jesus_n christ._n for_o it_o be_v 33._o he_o that_o baptise_v and_o 7._o neither_o be_v he_o that_o plant_v any_o thing_n nor_o he_o that_o water_v b●●_n god_n which_o give_v the_o increase_n to_o which_o purpose_n it_o be_v excellent_o say_v of_o aus●●n_n 15._o to_o the_o baptism_n which_o be_v consecrate_a with_o evangelicall_a word_n pertain_v not_o the_o error_n of_o any_o man_n either_o of_o the_o giver_n or_o of_o the_o receiver_n whether_o he_o think_v otherwise_o then_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n teach_v of_o the_o father_n or_o of_o the_o son_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n indeed_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o great_a counsel_n of_o nice_a that_o the_o 19_o pauli●nistae_fw-la come_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v be_v rebaptise_v where_o by_o rebaptise_v they_o mean_v the_o repeat_n of_o that_o action_n which_o be_v erroneous_o suppose_v to_o be_v true_a baptism_n but_o in_o truth_n be_v not_o because_o it_o want_v the_o true_a essential_a form_n of_o word_n which_o the_o council_n judge_v necessary_a to_o be_v supply_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o repugnancy_n between_o they_o and_o the_o african_a council_n which_o decree_v under_o pope_n stephen_n that_o the_o 19_o novatian_n return_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v not_o be_v rebaptise_v because_o their_o former_a baptism_n though_o give_v by_o heretic_n be_v according_a to_o the_o true_a form_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o sufficient_a it_o be_v true_a that_o 9_o agrippinus_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n defend_v rebaptisation_n and_o he_o be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o mortal_a man_n which_o defend_v it_o wherein_o he_o be_v follow_v by_o saint_n ibid._n cyprian_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n but_o then_o they_o have_v not_o see_v the_o point_n define_v by_o any_o general_a counsel_n and_o though_o they_o hold_v a_o error_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o judge_v they_o heretic_n which_o hold_v the_o contrary_a neither_o do_v they_o rebaptize_v those_o who_o the_o catholic_n have_v baptize_v nor_o make_v any_o rent_n in_o the_o church_n but_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n yea_o saint_n 48._o austin_n say_v some_o report_n that_o cyprian_n recall_v this_o error_n &_o s._n luci●_n hierom_n affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n do_v the_o like_a move_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o after_o they_o come_v the_o donatist_n stiff_o maintain_v and_o increase_v this_o error_n even_o when_o the_o church_n have_v determine_v the_o contrary_a and_o therefore_o be_v just_o judge_v heretic_n yea_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o 13._o rebaptize_v such_o as_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v a_o diabolical_a presumption_n for_o which_o cause_v 1●_n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n say_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o opinion_n we_o judge_v which_o may_v seem_v strange_a the_o author_n
you_o make_v a_o grievous_a complaint_n that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o depose_v but_o also_o use_v with_o great_a indignity_n both_o before_o their_o depose_n and_o after_o wherefore_o let_v we_o first_o consider_v the_o circumstance_n and_o then_o come_v to_o the_o deposition_n itself_o phil._n i_o say_v that_o a_o grievous_a penalty_n be_v inflict_v upon_o such_o as_o shall_v after_o the_o feast_n of_o saint_n john_n baptist_n 1559._o say_v or_o hear_v mass_n or_o procure_v any_o other_o ecclesisticall_a office_n whatsoever_o after_o the_o old_a rite_n orthod._n you_o mask_v your_o novelty_n under_o the_o vizard_n of_o antiquity_n and_o call_v that_o the_o old_a rite_n which_o be_v but_o yesterday_o but_o proceed_v phil._n this_o penalty_n extend_v to_o such_o as_o shall_v administer_v any_o sacrament_n after_o the_o roman_a manner_n ort._n saint_n paul_n say_v 23_o that_o which_o i_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o deliver_v i_o unto_o you_o teach_v we_o that_o sacrament_n must_v be_v minister_v in_o such_o manner_n as_o we_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n we_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o rite_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o city_n or_o country_n but_o only_o to_o the_o institution_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o rome_n follow_v this_o we_o will_v follow_v it_o with_o rome_n if_o rome_n forsake_v this_o then_o farewell_n rome_n but_o what_o be_v the_o penalty_n phil._n to_o wit_n that_o he_o which_o offend_v against_o the_o law_n for_o the_o first_o time_n shall_v pay_v two_o hundred_o crown_n or_o be_v in_o bond_n six_o month_n for_o the_o second_o four_o hundred_o crown_n or_o a_o year_n in_o bond_n for_o the_o three_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o perpetual_a prison_n and_o forfeit_v all_o his_o good_n orthod._n what_o have_v that_o good_a lady_n do_v which_o do_v not_o become_v a_o most_o virtuous_a and_o gracious_a prince_n have_v she_o make_v law_n to_o establish_v religion_n so_o do_v cunctos_fw-la gratian_n valentinian_n and_o theodosius_n have_v she_o inflict_v a_o penalty_n upon_o the_o infringer_n so_o do_v 48._o constantine_n upon_o the_o donatist_n that_o their_o good_n shall_v be_v confiscate_v so_o do_v 50._o theodosius_n upon_o the_o donatist_n likewise_o ten_o pound_n of_o gold_n to_o be_v pay_v to_o the_o emperor_n exchequer_n and_o these_o law_n be_v high_o commend_v by_o saint_n austin_n indeed_o he_o be_v some_o time_n of_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v deal_v withal_o only_o by_o pugnandum_fw-la persuasion_n not_o by_o penalty_n but_o when_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n lay_v before_o he_o so_o plain_a example_n of_o so_o many_o city_n infect_v with_o donatisme_n and_o all_o reclaim_v by_o help_n of_o imperial_a law_n he_o ibidem_fw-la change_v his_o mind_n and_o yield_v unto_o they_o then_o he_o perceive_v that_o the_o circumcellion_n which_o be_v like_a unto_o mad_a man_n be_v bring_v into_o their_o right_a wit_n again_o and_o make_v good_a catholic_n by_o be_v bind_v as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o chain_n of_o imperial_a law_n then_o he_o perceive_v that_o other_o be_v in_o a_o spiritual_a lethargy_n be_v awaken_v with_o the_o severity_n of_o imperial_a law_n then_o he_o perceive_v that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n serve_v christ_n even_o by_o make_v law_n for_o christ._n so_o do_v that_o gracious_a lady_n queen_n elizabeth_n wherein_o how_o mild_o and_o merciful_o she_o proceed_v you_o may_v learn_v by_o look_v back_o to_o her_o sister_n queen_n mary_n who_o be_v not_o content_a to_o inflict_v a_o pecuniary_a mulct_n or_o a_o little_a imprisonment_n upon_o those_o of_o the_o contrary_a religion_n but_o tie_v they_o to_o stake_n &_o burn_v they_o to_o ash_n in_o flame_a fire_n phil._n as_o though_o a_o life_n lingt_v in_o disgrace_n be_v not_o worse_o than_o a_o present_a death_n for_o 15._o fourteen_o noble_a and_o most_o worthy_a bishop_n inferior_a in_o virtue_n and_o learning_n to_o none_o in_o europe_n be_v all_o depose_v from_o their_o honour_n and_o high_a call_n and_o most_o of_o they_o imprison_v and_o spiteful_o use_v in_o all_o respect_n orthod._n first_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o they_o deserve_v and_o second_o 2_o how_o they_o be_v serve_v how_o well_o they_o deserve_v at_o the_o queen_n hand_n may_v appear_v by_o their_o behaviour_n in_o three_o point_n concern_v the_o coronation_n disputation_n and_o excommunication_n first_o when_o the_o queen_n be_v to_o be_v crown_v they_o all_o conspire_v together_o refuse_v to_o perform_v such_o solemnity_n as_o by_o they_o of_o duty_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v at_o her_o coronation_n owen_n oglethorp_n bishop_n of_o carlill_n only_o except_v phil._n have_v they_o not_o cause_n to_o refuse_v 272._o so_o soon_o as_o she_o come_v to_o the_o crown_n she_o present_o reveal_v her_o mind_n in_o religion_n both_o by_o many_o other_o mean_n and_o especial_o in_o that_o she_o straightway_o silence_v the_o catholic_a preacher_n and_o suffer_v the_o heretic_n to_o return_v into_o the_o kingdom_n from_o diverse_a place_n where_o they_o be_v in_o banishment_n moreover_o she_o give_v charge_n to_o a_o certain_a bishop_n about_o to_o perform_v the_o holy_a rite_n before_o she_o and_o now_o stand_v at_o the_o altar_n attire_v in_o holy_a vestment_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o elevate_v the_o consecrate_a host_n whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n who_o office_n it_o be_v cardinal_n poole_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v depart_v this_o transitory_a life_n to_o anoint_v and_o consecrate_v she_o to_o be_v queen_n deny_v his_o help_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n likewise_o all_o save_v one_o and_o he_o almost_o the_o last_o among_o they_o ortho_n your_o elevation_n be_v refer_v to_o adoration_n which_o be_v idolatry_n therefore_o if_o she_o forbid_v it_o as_o also_o the_o preach_a of_o error_n and_o command_v the_o preach_v of_o truth_n she_o do_v but_o her_o duty_n for_o as_o saint_n 51._o austin_n say_v prince_n may_v command_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o forbid_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a within_o their_o own_o kingdom_n not_o in_o civil_a affair_n only_o but_o in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o divine_a religion_n also_o but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o queen_n therein_o have_v commit_v a_o error_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o popery_n be_v true_a religion_n yet_o she_o be_v the_o lawful_a queen_n the_o kingdom_n descend_v to_o she_o by_o right_a of_o inheritance_n the_o noble_n and_o commons_o according_a to_o their_o duty_n acknowledge_v she_o for_o queen_n she_o be_v proclaim_v by_o order_n take_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o archb._n of_o york_n himself_o than_o lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n what_o reason_n then_o have_v the_o bishop_n to_o deny_v she_o that_o solemnity_n which_o be_v never_o deny_v to_o any_o of_o her_o noble_a progenitour_n if_o she_o have_v pull_v the_o mitre_n from_o their_o head_n for_o refuse_v to_o set_v the_o diadem_n upon_o her_o head_n have_v not_o this_o be_v a_o just_a reward_n for_o a_o due_a desert_n hitherto_o of_o the_o first_o point_n that_o be_v the_o coronation_n second_o it_o be_v the_o queen_n pleasure_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o solemn_a 3_o disputation_n between_o the_o popish_a bishop_n or_o some_o other_o champion_n appoint_v by_o they_o on_o the_o one_o part_n and_o other_o learned_a divine_n of_o our_o religion_n on_o the_o other_o part_n but_o the_o bishop_n with_o one_o accord_n most_o obstinate_o refuse_v the_o encounter_n phil._n they_o have_v reason_n for_o as_o they_o then_o answer_v for_o themselves_o it_o 283._o be_v not_o fit_a that_o those_o thing_n which_o for_o many_o age_n have_v be_v define_v by_o so_o famous_a judgement_n of_o pope_n counsel_n and_o father_n shall_v now_o come_v again_o into_o question_n and_o disputation_n orth._n you_o tell_v we_o of_o pope_n counsel_n and_o father_n but_o i_o hear_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o the_o scripture_n true_o philodox_n we_o build_v not_o our_o faith_n upon_o pope_n nor_o counsel_n nor_o father_n but_o only_o upon_o the_o bless_a and_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n register_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n but_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o word_n we_o make_v honourable_a account_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o father_n yet_o so_o that_o we_o put_v a_o infinite_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o live_a god_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v infallible_a it_o can_v neither_o deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v but_o the_o word_n of_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n therefore_o we_o must_v try_v all_o thing_n and_o hold_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o the_o touchstone_n of_o all_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v we_o afraid_a of_o the_o counsel_n and_o father_n you_o bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n that_o all_o make_v for_o you_o but_o upon_o manifold_a and_o
just_a experience_n it_o prove_v otherwise_o as_o for_o the_o pope_n if_o you_o mean_v the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n we_o regard_v they_o with_o reverence_n and_o if_o their_o true_a write_n be_v extant_a we_o will_v willing_o embrace_v they_o but_o as_o for_o your_o late_a pope_n we_o little_o respect_v they_o moreover_o if_o your_o bishop_n have_v for_o they_o the_o former_a definition_n of_o father_n and_o counsel_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o have_v convince_v their_o adversary_n in_o disputation_n this_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o spur_n unto_o they_o and_o not_o a_o bridle_n phil._n as_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o call_v the_o former_a definition_n in_o question_n again_o so_o supra_fw-la much_o less_o be_v it_o fit_a that_o those_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v discuss_v in_o the_o university_n by_o certain_a order_n before_o the_o learned_a and_o judicious_a shall_v be_v handle_v before_o the_o people_n which_o be_v unskilful_a and_o desirous_a of_o novelty_n which_o use_v to_o define_v every_o thing_n rather_o by_o outcry_n then_o by_o argument_n orthod._n as_o though_o this_o disputation_n have_v be_v intend_v before_o the_o rude_a and_o barbarous_a multitude_n and_o not_o rather_o before_o the_o most_o honourable_a grave_a wise_a and_o judicious_a in_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o bishop_n doubt_v the_o cause_n they_o fear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o defend_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n phil._n 284._o they_o say_v that_o against_o the_o contentious_a and_o such_o as_o will_v not_o rest_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n little_a good_a can_v be_v do_v by_o disputation_n and_o very_o no_o marvel_n if_o they_o be_v loath_a to_o have_v trial_n by_o disputation_n when_o the_o judge_n infra_fw-la be_v nicholas_n bacon_n a_o layman_n a_o heretic_n altogether_o ignorant_a of_o divinity_n the_o most_o reverend_a archbishop_n of_o york_n assist_v for_o fashion_n sake_n only_o the_o day_n come_v which_o be_v the_o three_o of_o april_n there_o be_v infinite_a concourse_n unequal_a law_n of_o disputation_n be_v prescribe_v of_o the_o heretic_n only_o nothing_o be_v do_v with_o order_n and_o reason_n the_o time_n slip_v away_o with_o declamation_n on_o both_o side_n the_o profane_a judge_n moderate_v all_o thing_n as_o it_o please_v he_o all_o come_v to_o nothing_o and_o so_o the_o heretic_n proceed_v in_o their_o madness_n orth._n these_o be_v figure_n of_o rehetoricke_n wherewith_o you_o use_v to_o embellish_v your_o speech_n as_o it_o be_v with_o precious_a stone_n whosoever_o will_v hold_v with_o the_o pope_n be_v present_o with_o you_o a_o good_a catholic_a and_o a_o very_a learned_a man_n but_o let_v he_o be_v never_o so_o wise_a learned_a and_o judicious_a if_o he_o love_v god_n his_o prince_n and_o country_n better_o than_o the_o pope_n he_o shall_v be_v reproach_v with_o ignorance_n and_o heresy_n as_o appear_v in_o that_o honourable_a personage_n sir_n nicholas_n bacon_n lord_n keeper_n of_o the_o great_a seal_n of_o england_n a_o man_n famous_a for_o wisdom_n piety_n and_o the_o zeal_n of_o god_n glory_n but_o why_o do_v you_o blemish_v he_o because_o he_o have_v the_o favour_n of_o a_o gracious_a prince_n you_o may_v have_v learn_v of_o 11._o solomon_n he_o that_o love_v pureness_n of_o heart_n for_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o lip_n the_o king_n shall_v be_v his_o friend_n can_v you_o blame_v he_o for_o that_o he_o be_v design_v by_o his_o sovereign_n to_o be_v a_o moderator_n at_o the_o disputation_n you_o shall_v rather_o have_v consider_v the_o queen_n great_a mildness_n and_o gracious_a proceed_n in_o that_o she_o vouchsafe_v to_o join_v with_o he_o a_o assistant_n as_o sanders_n confess_v one_o of_o your_o own_o religion_n a_o man_n of_o eminent_a note_n in_o church_n and_o common_a wealth_n who_o stand_v not_o for_o a_o cipher_n or_o for_o fashion_n sake_n but_o be_v arm_v with_o authority_n and_o have_v power_n to_o provide_v that_o the_o papist_n shall_v have_v full_a liberty_n to_o speak_v their_o mind_n before_o that_o great_a and_o honourable_a assembly_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o business_n shall_v be_v contrive_v with_o great_a equality_n and_o indifferency_n phil._n shall_v a_o lay_v man_n judge_v of_o bishop_n and_o profound_a divine_n orth._n do_v not_o 5._o basil_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n and_o other_o bishop_n dispute_n with_o photinus_n before_o certain_a noble_a man_n which_o the_o emperor_n have_v appoint_v to_o be_v judge_n do_v not_o saint_n prefatione_fw-la austin_n dispute_v with_o the_o donatist_n marcellinus_n the_o tribune_n be_v judge_n do_v he_o not_o dispute_v with_o 178._o pascentius_n the_o arrian_n laurentius_n a_o secular_a man_n be_v judge_n and_o if_o it_o please_v you_o to_o look_v into_o the_o volume_n of_o counsel_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o the_o four_o general_a council_n be_v the_o first_o at_o chalcedon_n noble_a man_n of_o the_o 1._o laity_n be_v appoint_v judge_n who_o name_n be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o first_o action_n the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n be_v the_o three_o at_o 7._o constantinople_n and_o in_o the_o three_o general_a council_n be_v the_o first_o at_o ephesus_n theodosius_n and_o valentintan_n appoint_v 732._o candidianus_n a_o earl_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n phil._n these_o be_v judge_n after_o a_o sort_n but_o how_o that_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o emperor_n concern_v candidianus_n ibidem_fw-la ad_fw-la sacram_fw-la vestram_fw-la synodum_fw-la abire_fw-la iussimus_fw-la sed_fw-la ea_fw-la lege_fw-la &_o conditione_n ut_fw-la cum_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la &_o controversijs_fw-la quae_fw-la circafidei_fw-la dogmata_fw-la incidunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la quicquam_fw-la common_a habeat_fw-la i._n we_o have_v command_v he_o to_o go_v unto_o your_o sacred_a synod_n but_o upon_o this_o condition_n that_o he_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o do_v with_o question_n and_o controversy_n of_o faith_n orthod._n very_o true_a ibidem_fw-la but_o first_o to_o remove_v all_o such_o person_n as_o may_v be_v troublesome_a to_o the_o sacred_a synod_n second_o not_o to_o suffer_v those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o synod_n to_o depart_v before_o the_o consultation_n be_v end_v three_o not_o to_o let_v they_o dispute_v any_o by-matter_n before_o the_o principal_n be_v full_o discuss_v and_o conclude_v four_o to_o provide_v that_o the_o disputation_n may_v be_v peaceable_a without_o tumult_n five_o to_o see_v that_o every_o man_n may_v have_v liberty_n without_o offence_n to_o propose_v what_o he_o think_v good_a and_o to_o confute_v the_o contrary_n in_o like_a manner_n sir_n nicholas_n bacon_n be_v appoint_v to_o these_o and_o the_o like_a office_n and_o not_o to_o decide_v or_o determine_v any_o controversy_n of_o faith_n phil._n he_o be_v a_o capital_a hostem_fw-la enemy_n of_o the_o catholic_n orthod._n all_o that_o be_v do_v or_o say_v at_o those_o meeting_n be_v extant_a to_o be_v end_n see_v whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o all_o his_o proceed_n about_o that_o business_n be_v most_o mild_a moderate_a honourable_a and_o christian_a though_o the_o bishop_n do_v show_v themselves_o very_o obstinate_a phil._n 284._o the_o protestant_n will_v have_v have_v they_o to_o dispute_v upon_o such_o article_n propose_v for_o question_n as_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o great_a show_n of_o proof_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o heretic_n as_o of_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n of_o public_a prayer_n to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o such_o like_a orthod._n in_o the_o public_a reformation_n of_o a_o church_n the_o first_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v the_o due_a order_n of_o divine_a service_n and_o sacrament_n therefore_o the_o question_n be_v choose_v with_o singular_a discretion_n one_o concern_v the_o prayer_n whether_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n another_o concern_v the_o lord_n supper_n whether_o it_o shall_v be_v minister_v in_o both_o kind_n in_o both_o which_o point_v you_o have_v do_v great_a injury_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o you_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n make_v choice_n of_o such_o question_n as_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o great_a show_n of_o proof_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v we_o think_v you_o but_o a_o seem_a show_n of_o proof_n &_o no_o sound_n substantial_a proof_n indeed_o if_o the_o bishop_n have_v be_v of_o this_o opinion_n it_o shall_v rather_o have_v encourage_v they_o to_o the_o encounter_n then_o have_v cause_v they_o to_o fly_v the_o field_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o we_o in_o these_o question_n only_o if_o the_o disputation_n have_v be_v about_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n invocation_n of_o saint_n justification_n by_o faith_n and_o such_o like_a can_v not_o we_o have_v produce_v as_o pregnant_a proof_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o these_o as_o for_o the_o former_a but_o now_o one_o may_v
hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la angliae_fw-la quam_fw-la alium_fw-la quemuis_fw-la externum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la i._o at_o the_o length_n we_o all_o agree_v with_o one_o mind_n and_o one_o heart_n upon_o this_o conclusion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o any_o great_a jurisdiction_n give_v he_o of_o god_n in_o holy_a scripture_n over_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n and_o 〈…〉_z bellarmine_n himself_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o cheynie_n the_o carthusian_n monk_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1535._o there_o be_v a_o parliament_n wherein_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o all_o shall_v renounce_v the_o pope_n and_o all_o other_o foreign_a power_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o their_o oath_n thus_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n do_v then_o both_o approve_v the_o title_n and_o take_v the_o oath_n which_o bishop_n be_v such_o as_o yourselves_o commend_v 4●_n to_o be_v inferior_a to_o none_o in_o europe_n for_o virtue_n and_o learning_n and_o true_o except_v their_o opinion_n in_o religion_n wherein_o they_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o stream_n of_o the_o time_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o general_o they_o be_v very_o well_o learned_a erasmus_n invite_v into_o england_n by_o william_n warham_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n when_o he_o have_v consider_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n and_o other_o nation_n he_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n in_o print_n that_o 306._o only_a england_n have_v learned_a bishop_n moreover_o most_o of_o these_o learned_a bishop_n do_v open_o in_o the_o pulpit_n at_o pauls-crosse_n defend_v the_o king_n title_n and_o 〈…〉_z sundry_a of_o they_o by_o their_o publish_a write_n maintain_v the_o same_o the_o self-same_a oath_n be_v take_v again_o in_o the_o ●aigne_n of_o k._n edward_n phil._n they_o change_v their_o mind_n in_o the_o day_n of_o q._n mary_n orthod._n very_o true_a but_o their_o inconstancy_n can_v abolish_v the_o solidity_n of_o their_o former_a confession_n and_o though_o they_o recall_v their_o opinion_n yet_o they_o never_o answer_v their_o own_o argument_n which_o remain_v still_o in_o print_n as_o a_o witness_n to_o the_o world_n that_o their_o former_a judgement_n be_v ground_v upon_o god_n verity_n and_o that_o the_o prince_n title_n do_v stand_v with_o right_n and_o equity_n phil._n these_o be_v bishop_n and_o synod_n of_o our_o own_o nation_n only_o but_o 3._o be_v there_o ever_o any_o learned_a man_n elsewhere_o that_o do_v approve_v this_o title_n be_v there_o ever_o any_o king_n or_o queen_n christian_n or_o heathen_a catholic_a or_o heretic_n in_o all_o the_o 1._o world_n beside_o before_o our_o age_n that_o do_v practice_v challenge_v or_o accept_v it_o orthod._n look_v into_o the_o godly_a king_n of_o juda_n look_v into_o the_o proceed_n of_o christian_a emperor_n ●_o constantine_n gratian_n theodosius_n and_o such_o like_a look_v into_o the_o law_n of_o 1._o charles_n and_o 2._o lodowick_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o they_o practise_v as_o much_o as_o ever_o we_o ascribe_v to_o the_o queen_n in_o this_o oath_n when_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n by_o the_o pack_v of_o dioscorus_n have_v allow_v the_o curse_a opinion_n of_o eutyches_n and_o depose_v flavianus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n pope_n leo_n upon_o this_o occasion_n write_v thus_o unto_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n 24._o behold_v most_o christian_a and_o reverend_a emperor_n i_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o fellow_n bishop_n make_v supplication_n unto_o you_o that_o all_o thing_n may_v stand_v in_o the_o same_o state_n in_o which_o they_o be_v before_o any_o of_o these_o judgement_n until_o a_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n who_o make_v this_o supplication_n pope_n leo_n a_o holy_a and_o learned_a pope_n to_o who_o to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n for_o what_o that_o the_o emperor_n will_v command_v not_o entreat_v but_o command_n so_o this_o be_v a_o action_n of_o royal_a authority_n what_o shall_v he_o command_v that_o all_o thing_n may_v stand_v in_o their_o former_a state_n what_o thing_n mean_v he_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o religion_n concern_v the_o nature_n and_o person_n of_o christ._n but_o what_o be_v it_o to_o stand_v in_o the_o former_a state_n that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o all_o man_n so_o to_o judge_v and_o speak_v of_o these_o holy_a mystery_n as_o they_o do_v before_o the_o spring_a up_o of_o the_o eutychian_n heresy_n for_o than_o they_o hold_v the_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n and_o this_o he_o beseech_v the_o emperor_n to_o command_v notwithstanding_o the_o contrary_a determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 43._o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o apparent_o subvert_v the_o faith_n can_v right_o be_v call_v a_o council_n which_o your_o highness_n for_o very_a love_n to_o the_o truth_n will_v make_v void_a by_o your_o decree_n to_o the_o contrary_a most_o glorious_a emperor_n i_o therefore_o earnest_o request_v and_o beseech_v your_o majesty_n by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o founder_n and_o guider_n of_o your_o kingdom_n that_o in_o this_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o be_v present_o to_o be_v keep_v you_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o faith_n to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n which_o our_o bless_a father_n preach_v be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o from_o the_o apostle_n neither_o permit_v such_o thing_n as_o have_v be_v long_o since_o condemn_v by_o they_o to_o be_v fresh_o reviue_v again_o but_o that_o you_o will_v rather_o command_v that_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o ancient_a nicene_n council_n may_v stand_v in_o force_n the_o interpretation_n of_o heretic_n be_v remove_v here_o the_o pope_n ascribe_v to_o the_o emperor_n power_n to_o ratify_v and_o establish_v those_o counsel_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o disannul_v those_o who_o determination_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n yea_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v authority_n to_o inhibit_v and_o restrain_v general_n counsel_n that_o they_o call_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o question_n which_o the_o emperor_n martian_a practise_v enter_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o 4._o forbid_v the_o bishop_n to_o avouch_v any_o thing_n concern_v the_o birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n otherwise_o then_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o nicene_n creed_n moreover_o when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v conclude_v pope_n 59_o leo_n write_v thus_o again_o to_o the_o emperor_n because_o i_o must_v by_o all_o mean_n obey_v your_o piety_n and_o most_o religious_a will_n i_o have_v willing_o give_v my_o consent_a sentence_n to_o those_o synodall_n constitution_n which_o concern_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o condemnation_n of_o heretic_n please_v i_o very_o well_o the_o emperor_n require_v the_o pope_n to_o subscribe_v and_o he_o cheerful_o do_v so_o protest_v that_o for_o his_o part_n he_o must_v by_o all_o mean_n obey_v the_o prince_n will_v in_o those_o case_n now_o tell_v i_o whether_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o emperor_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n over_o all_o person_n even_o in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a as_o the_o emperor_n martian_a do_v practice_v this_o supremacy_n so_o the_o emperor_n 4._o 880._o basill_n do_v challenge_v the_o title_n when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a ecclesiastical_a ship_n be_v commit_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o divine_a providence_n phil._n the_o word_n be_v thus_o in_o surius_n 349._o in_o exordio_fw-la synodi_fw-la ita_fw-la locutus_fw-la est_fw-la basilius_n cum_fw-la divina_fw-la &_o benignissima_fw-la providentia_fw-la nobis_fw-la gubernacula_fw-la universalis_fw-la navis_fw-la commisisset_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o synod_n thus_o say_v basilius_n the_o emperor_n when_o the_o divine_a and_o most_o benign_a providence_n have_v commit_v unto_o we_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a ship_n etc._n etc._n where_o by_o universal_a ship_n be_v mean_v civil_a administration_n not_o ecclesiastical_a as_o surius_n have_v well_o observe_v ortho_n 〈…〉_z binius_fw-la relate_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n tell_v how_o the_o emperor_n epainagnosticum_fw-la be_v read_v in_o the_o council_n in_o these_o word_n divina_fw-la clementique_fw-la providentia_fw-la gubernacula_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la n●uis_fw-la vobis_fw-la committente_fw-la that_o be_v the_o divine_a and_o gracius_fw-la providence_n of_o god_n commit_v unto_o you_o the_o government_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ship_n where_o you_o see_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ship_n phil._n to_o who_o be_v the_o government_n of_o the_o ship_n commit_v vobis_fw-la to_o you_o that_o be_v to_o the_o bishop_n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o emperor_n orth._n indeed_o
binius_fw-la have_v vobis_fw-la but_o it_o shall_v be_v nobis_fw-la which_o may_v appear_v first_o because_o the_o emperor_n himself_o in_o the_o word_n short_o after_o follow_v in_o binius_fw-la say_v nos_fw-la proratione_fw-la datae_fw-la nobis_fw-la in_o ecclesiasticis_fw-la rebus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la non_fw-la tacebimus_fw-la that_o be_v we_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o power_n give_v unto_o we_o in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n will_v not_o hold_v our_o peace_n where_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o emperor_n do_v think_v himself_o to_o have_v power_n give_v he_o from_o god_n not_o only_o in_o matter_n civil_a but_o also_o in_o ecclesiastical_a therefore_o when_o the_o emperor_n say_v that_o the_o divine_a providence_n have_v commit_v unto_o he_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a ship_n he_o must_v needs_o be_v understand_v as_o well_o of_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a as_o civil_a which_o may_v yet_o appear_v further_o by_o the_o emperor_n word_n as_o they_o be_v in_o surtus_fw-la immediate_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o sentence_n omne_fw-la studium_fw-la arripuimus_fw-la &_o ante_fw-la publicas_fw-la curas_fw-la ecclesiasticas_fw-la dissoluere_fw-la i._n when_o the_o divine_a providence_n have_v commit_v unto_o we_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a ship_n we_o use_v all_o diligence_n to_o dispatch_v ecclesiastical_a care_n before_o the_o public_a affair_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n so_o if_o surius_n will_v be_v judge_v by_o his_o own_o edition_n and_o give_v the_o emperor_n leave_v to_o expound_v himself_o then_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n must_v be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a ship_n wherefore_o though_o surius_n will_v raze_v out_o the_o word_n ecclesiastical_a and_o binius_fw-la foist_n in_fw-la vobis_fw-la instead_o of_o nobis_fw-la yet_o whether_o we_o compare_v either_o of_o they_o with_o himself_o or_o each_o of_o they_o with_o other_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o emperor_n basil_n do_v challenge_v the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a ship_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a and_o that_o in_o a_o general_a council_n no_o man_n resist_v he_o what_o do_v this_o differ_v from_o supreme_a governor_n as_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o basill_n do_v challenge_v this_o government_n no_o man_n resist_v so_o sundry_a synod_n 6_o have_v give_v the_o like_a to_o prince_n not_o refuse_v it_o there_o be_v a_o council_n hold_v at_o 402._o mentz_n in_o germany_n the_o year_n 814._o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o pope_n leo_n the_o three_o the_o synodall_n act_n whereof_o binius_fw-la profess_v that_o he_o compare_v with_o a_o manuscript_n send_v he_o out_o of_o the_o emperor_n library_n at_o vienna_n now_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o this_o synod_n begin_v thus_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o most_o glorious_a and_o most_o christian_a emperor_n carolus_n augustus_n governor_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o little_a after_o we_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n because_o he_o have_v grant_v unto_o his_o holy_a church_n a_o governor_n so_o godly_a etc._n etc._n and_o again_o about_o all_o these_o point_n we_o great_o need_v your_o aid_n and_o sound_a doctrine_n which_o may_v both_o admonish_v we_o continnal_o and_o instruct_v we_o courteous_o so_o far_o that_o such_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v brief_o touch_v beneath_o in_o a_o few_o chapter_n may_v receive_v strength_n from_o your_o authority_n if_o so_o be_v that_o your_o piety_n shall_v so_o judge_v it_o worthy_a whatsoever_o be_v find_v in_o they_o worthy_a to_o be_v amend_v let_v your_o magnificent_a and_o imperial_a dignity_n command_v to_o amend_v in_o the_o year_n 847._o there_o be_v hold_v another_o synod_n at_o mentz_n in_o the_o time_n of_o leo_n the_o four_o and_o lotharius_n the_o emperor_n where_o the_o bishop_n begin_v in_o the_o like_a manner_n 631._o domino_fw-la serenissimo_fw-la &_o christianissimo_fw-la regi_fw-la ludovico_n verae_fw-la religionis_fw-la strenuissimo_fw-la rectori_fw-la i._o to_o our_o most_o gracious_a lord_n and_o christian_a king_n lodowick_n the_o most_o puissant_a governor_n of_o true_a religion_n the_o like_a be_v ascribe_v to_o king_n reccesuinthius_fw-la in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o 1183._o emerita_n in_o portugal_n about_o the_o year_n 705._o in_o these_o word_n who_o vigilance_n do_v govern_v both_o secular_a thing_n with_o great_a piety_n and_o ecclesiastical_a by_o his_o wisdom_n plentiful_o give_v he_o of_o god_n so_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o governor_n both_o in_o cause_n secular_a and_o ecclesiastical_a this_o council_n of_o emerita_n receive_v much_o strength_n and_o authority_n from_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o peter_n archb._n of_o compostella_n as_o witness_v emer_n garsias_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o most_o famous_a bishop_n assemble_v in_o synod_n have_v give_v unto_o prince_n such_o title_n as_o be_v equivalent_a to_o the_o st●le_n annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o kingdom_n to_o which_o we_o may_v adjoine_v the_o judgement_n of_o other_o father_n scopul_n tertullian_n colimus_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la ut_fw-la hominem_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minorem_fw-la i._o we_o reverence_v the_o emperor_n as_o a_o man_n next_o unto_o god_n and_o inferior_a only_o to_o god_n 5._o optatus_n super_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la solus_fw-la deus_fw-la qui_fw-la fecit_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la above_o the_o emperor_n be_v none_o but_o only_o god_n who_o make_v the_o emperor_n so_o saint_n ●_o chrysostome_n say_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v no_o peer_n upon_o earth_n and_o call_v he_o the_o head_n and_o crown_n of_o all_o man_n upon_o earth_n if_o he_o be_v next_o unto_o god_n and_o inferior_a only_o to_o god_n if_o none_o be_v above_o he_o but_o god_n only_o if_o he_o have_v no_o peer_n upon_o earth_n as_o be_v the_o head_n and_o crown_n of_o all_o man_n upon_o earth_n then_o must_v he_o needs_o be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n upon_o earth_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n which_o testify_v that_o most_o godly_a king_n command_v both_o priest_n and_o high_a priest_n even_o in_o case_n of_o religion_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v neither_o be_v this_o authority_n take_v away_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o continue_v the_o very_a same_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o saint_n paul_n who_o lift_v up_o his_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n proclaim_v 1._o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n which_o word_n every_o soul_n comprehend_v all_o person_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a yea_o though_o they_o be_v evangelist_n prophet_n or_o apostle_n as_o saint_n chrysostome_n do_v true_o expound_v they_o if_o every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n than_o the_o prince_n be_v superior_a to_o all_o and_o consequent_o supreme_a within_o his_o own_o dominion_n but_o why_o do_v i_o stay_v so_o long_o upon_o this_o point_n which_o have_v be_v of_o late_a so_o learned_o and_o plentiful_o handle_v that_o to_o say_v any_o more_o be_v but_o to_o cast_v water_n into_o the_o sea_n or_o to_o light_v a_o candle_n at_o noon_n day_n phil._n how_o unreasonable_a it_o be_v may_v appear_v by_o the_o absurdity_n which_o follow_v 6_o thereupon_o for_o if_o the_o prince_n be_v supreme_a governor_n in_o cause_n spiritual_a than_o he_o may_v command_v what_o religion_n he_o list_v and_o we_o must_v obey_v he_o orthod._n not_o so_o for_o he_o be_v supreme_a governor_n in_o cause_n temporal_a yet_o he_o may_v not_o command_v a_o man_n to_o bear_v false_a witness_n or_o to_o condemn_v the_o innocent_a as_o jesabell_n do_v or_o if_o he_o shall_v we_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n so_o in_o case_n of_o religion_n nabuchodonosor_n have_v no_o warrant_n to_o erect_v his_o image_n nor_o jeroboam_fw-la to_o set_v up_o his_o golden_a calf_n for_o the_o king_n as_o king_n be_v supreme_a under_o god_n not_o against_o god_n to_o command_v for_o truth_n not_o against_o truth_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v command_v ungodly_a thing_n we_o may_v not_o perform_v obedience_n but_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o his_o punishment_n with_o patience_n phil._n do_v not_o you_o by_o this_o title_n ascribe_v as_o much_o to_o the_o king_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o pope_n ortho_n we_o be_v far_o from_o it_o for_o when_o some_o malicious_a person_n do_v wrest_v the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n to_o a_o sinister_a sense_n notify_v how_o by_o word_n of_o the_o same_o oath_n it_o may_v be_v collect_v that_o the_o king_n or_o queen_n of_o this_o realm_n possessor_n of_o the_o crown_n may_v challenge_v authority_n and_o power_n of_o ministry_n of_o divine_a service_n in_o the_o church_n queen_n elizabeth_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o
election_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a manner_n and_o the_o laudable_a custom_n of_o the_o foresay_a church_n ancient_o use_v and_o inviolable_o observe_v after_o which_o election_n orderly_o perform_v and_o signify_v according_a to_o the_o law_n it_o please_v her_o highness_n to_o send_v her_o letter_n patent_n of_o commission_n for_o his_o confirmation_n and_o consecration_n to_o seven_o bishop_n six_z whereof_o be_v late_o return_v from_o exile_n who_o name_n with_o so_o much_o of_o the_o commission_n as_o concern_v this_o present_a purpose_n i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o for_o your_o better_a satisfaction_n chancery_n elizabeth_n dei_fw-la gratia_fw-la etc._n etc._n reverendis_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la patribus_fw-la anth._n landavensi_fw-la will._n barlow_n quondam_a bath_n episcopo_fw-la nunc_fw-la cicestrensi_fw-la electo_fw-la joh._n scory_n quondam_a cicestrensi_fw-la episcopo_fw-la nunc_fw-la herefordensi_fw-la electo_fw-la miloni_n coverdale_n quondam_a exoniensi_fw-la episcopo_fw-la joh._n suffraganeo_fw-la bedford_n joh._n suffraganeo_fw-la the●ford_n joh._n bale_n ossorensi_fw-la episcopo_fw-la quatenus_fw-la vos_fw-la aut_fw-la ad_fw-la minus_fw-la 4._o vestrum_fw-la eundem_fw-la math._n parkerum_fw-la in_o archiepiscopum_fw-la &_o pastorem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cathedralis_fw-la &_o metropoliticae_fw-la christi_fw-la cantuar_n praedictae_fw-la sicut_fw-la praefertur_fw-la electum_fw-la electionemque_fw-la praedictam_fw-la confirmare_fw-la &_o eundem_fw-la magistrum_fw-la math._n parker_n in_o arch_n &_o pastorem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la praedictae_fw-la consecrare_fw-la caeteraque_fw-la omne_fw-la &_o singula_fw-la peragere_fw-la quae_fw-la vestro_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la parte_fw-la incumbunt_fw-la pastorali_fw-la efficio_fw-la iuxta_fw-la formam_fw-la statutorum_fw-la in_fw-la ca_fw-mi parte_fw-la editorum_fw-la &_o provisorum_fw-la velitis_fw-la cum_fw-la effectu_fw-la etc._n etc._n da●_n 6_o decem._n anno_fw-la 2._o elizab_n that_o be_v that_o you_o or_o at_o the_o least_o four_o of_o you_o will_v effectual_o confirm_v the_o say_a matth_n parker_n elect_a to_o be_v archbishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o cathedral_n and_o metropolitical_a church_n of_o christ_n at_o canterbury_n aforesaid_a as_o be_v before_o mention_v and_o that_o you_o will_v effectual_o confirm_v the_o say_a election_n and_o consecrate_v the_o say_a matthew_n parker_n archbishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o say_a church_n and_o perform_v all_o and_o every_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o your_o pastoral_a office_n in_o this_o respect_n according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o statute_n set_v out_o and_o provide_v in_o this_o behalf_n behold_v how_o both_o the_o commission_n and_o statute_n concur_v with_o the_o canon_n phil._n but_o be_v the_o consecration_n according_o perform_v 7_o orth._n you_o need_v not_o doubt_v of_o it_o for_o first_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o the_o letter_n patent_n be_v direct_v have_v reason_n to_o set_v their_o hand_n cheerful_o to_o so_o good_a a_o work_n so_o much_o tend_v to_o the_o advance_v of_o the_o true_a religion_n which_o they_o all_o embrace_v and_o for_o which_o all_o of_o they_o except_o one_o have_v be_v in_o exile_n second_o how_o dare_v they_o do_v otherwise_o see_v it_o be_v enact_v by_o a_o statute_n make_v in_o the_o 25._o year_n of_o king_n 20._o henry_n 8._o and_o still_o in_o force_n that_o if_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n within_o the_o king_n dominion_n after_o any_o such_o election_n nomination_n or_o presentation_n signify_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n shall_v refuse_v and_o not_o confirm_v invest_v and_o consecrate_v with_o all_o due_a circumstance_n within_o twenty_o day_n after_o that_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n of_o such_o signification_n or_o presentation_n shall_v come_v to_o their_o hand_n than_o he_o or_o they_o so_o offend_v shall_v run_v in_o the_o danger_n pain_n and_o penalty_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o provision_n and_o praemunire_n make_v in_o the_o twenty_o five_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o three_o and_o in_o the_o sixteen_o of_o king_n richard_n the_o second_o phil._n this_o be_v some_o probability_n but_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o see_v master_n d._n sanders_n say_v that_o you_o have_v neither_o three_o nor_o two_o bishop_n and_o master_n d._n kellison_n say_v you_o can_v find_v none_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o contrary_a unless_o you_o produce_v the_o consecration_n itself_o orthod._n then_o to_o take_v away_o all_o scruple_n i_o will_v faithful_o deliver_v unto_o you_o out_o of_o authentical_a record_n both_o the_o day_n when_o he_o be_v consecrate_v and_o the_o person_n by_o who_o anno_fw-la 1559._o 10._o matt._n park_n cant._n cons._n 17._o decem._n by_o william_n barlow_n john_n scorie_n miles_n coverdale_n john_n hodgeskins_n phil._n if_o all_o this_o be_v grant_v yet_o it_o be_v nothing_o unless_o you_o can_v 8_o justify_v the_o consecration_n of_o his_o consecratour_n therefore_o you_o must_v tell_v i_o when_o they_o be_v make_v bishop_n orthod._n two_o of_o they_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n 8._o and_o two_o in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o k._n henry_n b._n barlow_n and_o the_o suffragan_n of_o bedford_n bishop_n barlow_n be_v a_o man_n of_o singular_a note_n who_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o 41._o bale_n ab_fw-la erudito_fw-la ingenio_fw-la famam_fw-la accepit_fw-la that_o be_v he_o have_v great_a fame_n and_o renown_n for_o a_o learned_a wit_n in_o regard_v whereof_o he_o be_v advance_v to_o be_v prior_n of_o b_o bisham_n and_o from_o thence_o elect_v to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o saint_n 179._o asaph_n which_o election_n be_v confirm_v 23._o febr_n 1535._o and_o soon_o after_o it_o please_v the_o king_n to_o prefer_v he_o to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o saint_n 205._o david_n where_o he_o continue_v all_o the_o day_n of_o king_n henry_n due_o discharge_v all_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o order_n of_o a_o bishop_n even_o episcopal_a consecration_n as_o i_o have_v buck_o already_o declare_v out_o of_o authentical_a record_n he_o be_v also_o translate_v by_o king_n edward_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o bath_n and_o well_n and_o by_o queen_n elizabeth_n promote_v to_o chichester_n and_o as_o he_o be_v general_o acknowledge_v and_o obey_v as_o a_o bishop_n in_o his_o own_o nation_n so_o bucanan_n relate_v how_o king_n henry_n send_v he_o ambassador_n into_o scotland_n do_v give_v he_o his_o just_a episcopum_fw-la episcopal_a title_n now_o you_o tell_v we_o 10._o before_o out_o of_o sanders_n that_o in_o king_n henry_n time_n none_o may_v be_v acknowledge_v for_o a_o bishop_n unless_o he_o be_v consecrate_v by_o three_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a wherefore_o see_v barlow_n be_v so_o famous_o and_o notorious_o acknowledge_v not_o only_o in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o king_n edward_n but_o also_o in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n henry_n it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n that_o he_o be_v so_o consecrate_v the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o suffragan_n of_o bedford_n phil._n what_o tell_v you_o i_o of_o suffragans_n you_o know_v how_o 502._o damasus_n speak_v against_o those_o titulary_a bishop_n call_v chorepiscopi_fw-la orthod._n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o chorepiscopi_fw-la the_o first_o have_v no_o episcopal_a consecration_n who_o be_v reprove_v and_o that_o just_o for_o they_o be_v only_a priest_n and_o not_o bishop_n and_o of_o these_o damasus_n speak_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o 17._o bellarmine_n the_o second_o have_v episcopal_a consecration_n and_o these_o though_o they_o have_v no_o city_n nor_o diocese_n of_o their_o own_o but_o only_o some_o country_n town_n for_o their_o see_n yet_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o consecration_n they_o be_v true_a bishop_n as_o 12._o bellarmine_n confess_v respondeo_fw-la suffraganeos_fw-la esse_fw-la veros_fw-la episcopos_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o ordinationem_fw-la habent_fw-la &_o jurisdictionem_fw-la licet_fw-la careant_fw-la possessione_n propriae_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la that_o be_v i_o answer_v that_o suffragans_n be_v true_a bishop_n because_o they_o have_v both_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n although_o they_o be_v not_o possess_v of_o a_o church_n of_o their_o own_o and_o of_o this_o latter_a sort_n be_v the_o suffragans_n of_o england_n establish_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o these_o word_n be_v it_o 14._o therefore_o enact_v by_o authority_n of_o this_o present_a parliament_n that_o the_o town_n of_o thetford_n ipswich_n colchester_n dover_n gilsord_n southampton_n taunton_n shaftesbury_n molton_n marleborrow_n bedford_n leicester_n gloucester_n shrewsbury_n bristol_n penreth_n bridgwater_n nottingham_n grantham_n hul_n huntingdon_n cambridge_n and_o the_o town_n of_o per_v and_o berwick_n s._n germane_a in_o cornwall_n and_o the_o i_o will_v of_o wight_n shall_v be_v take_v and_o accept_v for_o see_v of_o bishop_n suffragans_n to_o be_v make_v in_o this_o realm_n and_o in_o wales_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o such_o see_v shall_v be_v call_v suffragans_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o for_o their_o consecration_n provide_v always_o that_o the_o bishop_n that_o shall_v nominate_v the_o suffragan_n to_o the_o king_n highness_n or_o the_o
suffragan_n himself_o that_o shall_v be_v nominate_v shall_v provide_v two_o b._n or_o suffrag_n to_o consecrate_v he_o with_o the_o archbishop_n phil._n be_v john_n hodgeskin_n according_o consecrate_a orth._n he_o be_v consecrate_a by_o three_o as_o appear_v john_n 204._o hodgskin_n suffrag_v bedf._n cons._n 9_o dec._n 29._o hen._n 8._o by_o john_n lond._n john_n roff._n rob._n asaph_n phil._n but_o the_o statute_n produce_v require_v two_o bishop_n with_o a_o archbishop_n where_o be_v that_o archbishop_n ortho_n your_o institution_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n recognize_v at_o rome_n by_o the_o pope_n mandate_n may_v tell_v you_o that_o a_o archbishop_n may_v consec_fw-la alicui_fw-la coepiscoporum_fw-la vice_n svas_fw-la demandare_fw-la commit_v his_o room_n to_o any_o other_o of_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n and_o this_o you_o must_v hold_v for_o otherwise_o you_o can_v no_o way_n defend_v the_o consecration_n of_o your_o chief_a bishop_n namely_o bonner_n heath_n &_o thurlby_n who_o archbishop_n cranmer_n do_v not_o consecrate_v in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o by_o 261._o other_o to_o who_o he_o give_v commission_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n your_o principal_a bishop_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n descend_v from_o this_o same_o joh._n bedford_n for_o tho._n thurlby_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o consecrator_n of_o cardinal_n a._n poole_n be_v consecrate_a by_o joh._n 261._o bedf._n the_o other_o two_o be_v consecrate_a in_o king_n edward_n time_n both_o in_o one_o day_n as_o have_v be_v 11._o before_o declare_v and_o these_o also_o be_v very_o learned_a man_n coverdale_n help_v tindall_n in_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n his_o fame_n and_o renoun_n cause_v the_o scene_n king_n of_o denmark_n to_o write_v earnest_o unto_o queen_n marie_n that_o she_o will_v send_v he_o unto_o he_o which_o she_o do_v and_o how_o learned_a a_o man_n bishop_n scory_n be_v may_v appear_v by_o this_o that_o when_o the_o disputation_n be_v appoint_v with_o the_o popish_a bishop_n he_o be_v the_o fine_a first_o and_o principal_a man_n name_v on_o the_o protestant_n side_n with_o who_o the_o adversary_n dare_v not_o encounter_v and_o thus_o much_o of_o their_o consecration_n phil._n admit_v they_o be_v true_o consecrate_a and_o be_v bishop_n of_o their_o 10_o several_a see_v yet_o they_o flee_v away_o and_o so_o dispossess_v themselves_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o consecrate_v he_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o former_a episcopal_a title_n orthod._n by_o what_o power_n do_v a_o bishop_n consecrate_v a_o bishop_n phil._n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o episcopal_a 12._o character_n ortho_n but_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o character_n be_v indelible_a therefore_o they_o can_v not_o loose_v the_o power_n of_o consecrate_v by_o lose_v their_o bishopriks_n again_o if_o a_o bishop_n fly_v in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n do_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o loose_v his_o title_n then_o famous_a athanasius_n do_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o lose_v his_o title_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o flee_v from_o alexandria_n orthodoxos_fw-la i_o do_v say_v he_o withdraw_v myself_o by_o stealth_n from_o the_o people_n be_v mindful_a of_o the_o word_n of_o my_o saviour_n 23._o if_o they_o persecute_v you_o in_o one_o city_n fly_v into_o another_o but_o athanasius_n for_o all_o this_o do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n for_o although_o the_o arrian_n faction_n prevail_v the_o council_n of_o tyre_n 24._o depose_v he_o yea_o and_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o presence_n and_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o 5●_n emperor_n do_v institute_v 1._o gregory_n in_o his_o place_n yet_o the_o council_n of_o 1608_o sardica_n pronounce_v athanasius_n as_o also_o marcellus_n asclepas_n and_o other_o catholic_a exile_v bishop_n to_o be_v pure_a and_o innocent_a and_o deny_v that_o gregory_n the_o usurper_n of_o alexandria_n basil_n of_o ancyra_n quintianus_n of_o gaza_n which_o have_v enter_v like_o 446._o wolf_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o these_o man_n shall_v be_v call_v bishop_n so_o the_o council_n judge_v the_o church_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n even_o at_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v exile_v and_o the_o arrian_n in_o possession_n and_o according_o they_o 347._o depose_v gregory_n with_o such_o like_a &_o restore_v athanasius_n and_o the_o rest_n with_o honour_n which_o act_n they_o signify_v in_o a_o synodall_n epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n in_o this_o manner_n 444._o we_o will_v have_v you_o to_o know_v that_o gregory_n be_v make_v bishop_n unlawful_o by_o heretic_n and_o bring_v by_o they_o into_o your_o city_n be_v depose_v from_o his_o bishopric_n by_o the_o whole_a synod_n although_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o be_v never_o bishop_n therefore_o farewell_n and_o receive_v your_o bishop_n athanasius_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o though_o athanasius_n flee_v away_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n though_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n and_o another_o choose_v in_o his_o place_n by_o another_o council_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o emperor_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o he_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v the_o true_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o gregory_n never_o to_o have_v be_v the_o bishop_n thereof_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o marcellus_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n paulus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o other_o who_o be_v persecute_v for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o well_o as_o athanasius_n wherefore_o if_o you_o will_v conform_v your_o judgement_n to_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n you_o must_v confess_v that_o such_o as_o in_o king_n edward_n time_n be_v lawful_o possess_v of_o bishopricke_n though_o in_o queen_n mary_n time_n be_v persecute_v in_o one_o city_n they_o flee_v into_o another_o do_v still_o retain_v the_o title_n of_o true_a bishop_n and_o that_o those_o which_o invade_v their_o church_n be_v intruder_n and_o usurper_n thus_o it_o appear_v that_o as_o athanasius_n and_o the_o rest_n return_v from_o exile_n may_v ordain_v and_o do_v all_o such_o thing_n as_o belong_v to_o their_o episcopal_a office_n even_o so_o bishop_n barlow_n bishop_n coverdale_n and_o the_o rest_n return_v from_o exile_n may_v likewise_o ordain_v and_o justify_v their_o proceed_n in_o their_o episcopal_a function_n phil._n there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o reason_n for_o athanasius_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v restore_v by_o a_o council_n you_o be_v not_o but_o only_o by_o the_o prince_n orthod._n athanasius_n be_v restore_v sundry_a time_n sometime_o with_o a_o council_n sometime_o without_o when_o the_o council_n of_o tyre_n depose_v he_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o great_a call_v they_o to_o 22._o account_v for_o their_o judgement_n but_o when_o he_o hear_v he_o accuse_v by_o catholic_a bishop_n which_o former_o have_v be_v his_o own_o friend_n who_o the_o arrian_n have_v now_o suborn_v against_o he_o for_o threaten_v to_o hinder_v the_o carriage_n of_o corn_n from_o alexandria_n to_o constantinople_n he_o 23._o exile_v he_o into_o france_n from_o whence_o after_o the_o death_n of_o constantine_n the_o father_n he_o be_v restore_v to_o alexandria_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o constantine_n the_o son_n with_o the_o 3._o permission_n of_o his_o brother_n constantius_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o their_o father_n as_o appear_z by_o these_o word_n of_o athanasius_n 2._o bless_a constantine_n the_o young_a be_v mindful_a of_o the_o prescript_n of_o his_o father_n while_o he_o restore_v i_o to_o my_o country_n write_v a_o epistle_n in_o these_o word_n and_o so_o he_o set_v down_o constantine_n epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n concern_v which_o you_o shall_v hear_v your_o own_o 1._o baronius_n constantinus_n augustus_n athanasium_fw-la quem_fw-la vivente_fw-la patre_fw-la exceperat_fw-la treveris_fw-la regio_fw-la diplomate_v datis_fw-la ad_fw-la alexandrinos_n litteris_fw-la in_fw-la svam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la summo_fw-la cum_fw-la honore_fw-la restituit_fw-la i._n constantine_n the_o emperor_n restore_v athanasius_n who_o he_o have_v entertain_v at_o trever_n while_o his_o father_n be_v alive_a by_o his_o letter_n patent_n to_o the_o people_n of_o alexandria_n with_o very_o great_a honour_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o though_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n and_o exile_v by_o a_o prince_n yet_o he_o be_v restore_v only_o by_o the_o prince_n letter_n without_o a_o counsel_n phil._n the_o council_n of_o antioch_n 5._o object_v a_o 423._o canon_n against_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o which_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n can_v be_v restore_v but_o by_o a_o council_n of_o a_o great_a number_n and_o therefore_o see_v he_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o council_n of_o tyre_n and_o restore_v neither_o by_o a_o council_n of_o a_o great_a number_n nor_o by_o any_o council_n at_o all_o but_o only_o by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o emperor_n they_o depose_v he_o and_o put_v another_o in_o his_o place_n orthod._n first_o it_o be_v
at_o rome_n that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n may_v absolute_o succeed_v he_o ort._n this_o be_v your_o own_o conjecture_n and_o not_o law_n divine_a phil._n b●●●●bid_v pope_n marcellus_n say_v that_o peter_n come_v to_o rome_n iubente_fw-la domino_fw-la the_o lord_n so_o command_v orth._n this_o be_v your_o own_o tradition_n and_o not_o law_n divine_a and_o as_o your_o succession_n so_o your_o monarchical_a jurisdiction_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v by_o law_n divine_a this_o be_v well_o know_v to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o general_a council_n who_o confine_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n ascribe_v his_o patriarchical_a power_n unto_o 〈…〉_z custom_n &_o not_o to_o law_n divine_a this_o be_v likewise_o know_v to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o 〈…〉_z second_o and_o four_o general_a counsel_n who_o ascribe_v the_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o imperial_a city_n for_o so_o the_o father_n of_o the_o four_o council_n interpret_v the_o second_o and_o affirm_v it_o themselves_o antiquae_fw-la romae_fw-la throno_fw-la quòd_fw-la vrbs_fw-la illa_fw-la imperaret_fw-la jure_fw-la patres_fw-la privilegia_fw-la tribuere_fw-la &_o eadem_fw-la consideratione_n moti_fw-la 150._o dei_fw-la amantissimi_fw-la episcopi_fw-la sanctissimo_fw-la novae_fw-la romae_fw-la throno_fw-la aequalia_fw-la privilegia_fw-la tribuêre_fw-la rectè_fw-la iudicantes_fw-la urbem_fw-la quae_fw-la &_o imperio_fw-la &_o senatu_fw-la honorata_fw-la sit_fw-la &_o aequalibus_fw-la cum_fw-la antiquissima_fw-la regina_fw-la roma_fw-la privilegijs_fw-la fruatur_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la non_fw-la secus_fw-la ac_fw-la illam_fw-la extolli_fw-la ac_fw-la magnifieri_fw-la secundam_fw-la post_fw-la illam_fw-la existentem_fw-la the_o father_n do_v right_o give_v privilege_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o old_a rome_n because_o the_o city_n then_o reign_v and_o the_o 150._o bishop_n most_o earnest_a lover_n of_o god_n assemble_v in_o the_o second_o general_a council_n which_o be_v the_o first_o at_o constantinople_n moved●y_v the_o same_o consideration_n give_v equal_a privilege_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a throne_n of_o new_a rome_n right_o judge_v that_o the_o city_n which_o be_v honour_v both_o by_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o senate_n and_o enjoy_v equal_a privilege_n with_o rome_n the_o most_o ancient_a queen_n of_o city_n shall_v be_v extol_v and_o magnify_v even_o in_o thing_n ecclesiastical_a no_o otherwise_o than_o rome_n be_v the_o second_o in_o order_n after_o it_o thus_o they_o hold_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v not_o monarchical_a because_o they_o give_v equal_a privilege_n to_o constantinople_n but_o patriarchicall_a which_o they_o refer_v not_o to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n nor_o to_o peter_n fact_n nor_o to_o the_o succession_n in_o peter_n chair_n but_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o imperial_a city_n in_o that_o it_o be_v imperial_a therefore_o as_o 180_o binius_fw-la confess_v they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v by_o law_n humane_a and_o not_o divine_a phil._n 451._o baronius_n 22_o bellarmine_n and_o supra_fw-la binius_fw-la do_v tell_v you_o that_o this_o canon_n be_v not_o confirm_v by_o pope_n leo._n ortho_n 136._o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o doryleum_n do_v testify_v the_o contrary_a open_o in_o the_o council_n in_o these_o word_n sponte_fw-la subscripsi_fw-la quoniam_fw-la &_o hanc_fw-la regulam_fw-la sanctissimo_fw-la papae_fw-la in_o urbe_fw-la româ_fw-la relegi_fw-la praesentibus_fw-la clericis_fw-la constantinopolitanis_n eamque_fw-la suscepit_fw-la i._o i_o have_v subscribe_v willing_o because_o i_o read_v over_o even_o this_o canon_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o clerk_n of_o constantinople_n and_o he_o embrace_v it_o but_o let_v we_o imagine_v that_o he_o do_v not_o embrace_v it_o yet_o i_o refer_v this_o point_n to_o any_o indifferent_a judge_n whether_o we_o shall_v rather_o believe_v six_o hundred_o bishop_n and_o upward_o speak_v upright_o what_o they_o think_v and_o ground_v their_o judgement_n upon_o the_o decree_n of_o former_a general_a counsel_n than_o one_o man_n with_o a_o few_o flatter_a favourite_n speak_v partial_o in_o his_o own_o cause_n phil._n this_o canon_n be_v not_o make_v by_o the_o council_n but_o ibid._n anatolius_n with_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n make_v it_o secret_o and_o by_o stealth_n after_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o pope_n legate_n be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o council_n orthod._n the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v desirous_a to_o propose_v this_o matter_n 134_o entreat_v the_o pope_n legate_n to_o communicate_v with_o they_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o it_o who_o refuse_v because_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v charge_n to_o the_o contrary_a then_o they_o make_v relation_n of_o it_o to_o the_o judge_n who_o command_v the_o holy_a council_n then_o present_a to_o look_v into_o it_o which_o they_o do_v according_o therefore_o though_o it_o please_v the_o judge_n to_o depart_v yet_o the_o council_n proceed_v by_o authority_n from_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o pope_n legate_n may_v have_v stay_v if_o it_o have_v please_v themselves_o moreover_o the_o decree_n ibid._n be_v read_v at_o the_o next_o meeting_n open_o in_o the_o council_n before_o the_o judge_n who_o 137_o ratify_v they_o by_o their_o sentence_n and_o all_o the_o council_n cry_v and_o redouble_v again_o and_o again_o that_o the_o sentence_n be_v just_a phil._n the_o pope_n ibid._n legate_n interpose_v a_o contradiction_n affirm_v that_o the_o apostolic_a see_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v debase_v orthod._n the_o judge_n notwithstanding_o will_v not_o relent_v but_o conclude_v the_o whole_a business_n thus_o ibid._n tota_n synodus_fw-la approbavit_fw-la i._o the_o whole_a synod_n have_v approvedit_n wherefore_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a synod_n that_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n be_v not_o by_o law_n divine_a chap._n four_o of_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n before_o there_o be_v any_o christian_a prince_n phil._n if_o we_o consider_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o primitive_a antiquity_n which_o be_v near_a to_o the_o fountain_n and_o know_v best_o the_o meaning_n of_o law_n divine_a we_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o be_v either_o elect_v or_o at_o least_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o by_o authority_n from_o the_o pope_n either_o express_o or_o by_o his_o permission_n or_o connivencie_n and_o so_o receive_v their_o jurisdiction_n orthod._n to_o examine_v these_o point_n in_o order_n let_v we_o begin_v with_o the_o election_n of_o minister_n concern_v which_o we_o find_v three_o variety_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o first_o by_o lot_n the_o second_o by_o voice_n the_o three_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n 26._o mathias_n be_v choose_v by_o lot_n the_o 5._o deacon_n by_o voice_n 14._o timothy_n and_o other_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n for_o as_o 5._o chrysostome_n say_v in_o those_o day_n the_o pastor_n be_v make_v by_o pprophecy_n what_o be_v by_o prophecy_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o saul_n be_v show_v by_o prophecy_n when_o he_o lay_v hide_v among_o the_o stuff_n as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v separate_a unto_o i_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n so_o be_v timothy_n choose_v 1._o theodoret_n thou_o have_v not_o thy_o call_n from_o man_n but_o thou_o receive_v that_o order_n by_o divine_a revelation_n 1._o oecumenius_n by_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n timothy_n be_v choose_v of_o paul_n to_o be_v a_o disciple_n and_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n this_o kind_n of_o election_n seem_v to_o be_v usual_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o to_o have_v continue_v so_o long_o as_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n and_o discern_v of_o spirit_n remain_v now_o of_o these_o three_o the_o first_o and_o three_o be_v by_o god_n himself_o the_o second_o by_o all_o the_o faithful_a this_o be_v all_o we_o find_v in_o scripture_n yet_o here_o be_v no_o precept_n but_o only_a example_n wherefore_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v leave_v this_o point_n as_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a to_o be_v order_v by_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o church_n so_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v honest_o and_o in_o order_n from_o the_o scripture_n if_o we_o come_v to_o the_o age_n follow_v they_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n phil._n to_o the_o clergy_n i_o grant_v by_o the_o connivencie_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o in_o the_o council_n of_o 289._o laodicea_n election_n of_o b._n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o people_n orth._n the_o council_n in_o that_o place_n name_v priest_n not_o bishop_n and_o if_o under_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n you_o comprehend_v bishop_n yet_o you_o must_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v only_o provincial_a can_v not_o impose_v law_n to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n that_o bishop_n be_v choose_v by_o popular_a election_n after_o this_o council_n may_v appear_v by_o the_o great_a nicen_n council_n assemble_v as_o baronius_n think_v six_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o
laodicea_n in_o their_o synodall_n epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o to_o the_o belove_a brethren_n of_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n 9_o if_o peradventure_o any_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n do_v fall_v asleep_a let_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o such_o as_o have_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n a_o little_a before_o to_o succeed_v into_o the_o place_n of_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a if_o so_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v worthy_a and_o if_o the_o people_n shall_v choose_v they_o yet_o so_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o voice_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o alexandria_n be_v add_v thereunto_o and_o that_o they_o enjoy_v the_o same_o liberty_n before_o the_o nicen_n council_n be_v clear_a by_o saint_n cyprian_n say_v 4._o the_o people_n obey_v the_o lord_n commandment_n and_o fear_v god_n aught_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o a_o sinful_a ruler_n and_o not_o to_o intermingle_v themselves_o with_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o sacrilegious_a priest_n see_v they_o especial_o have_v power_n either_o to_o elect_v worthy_a priest_n or_o to_o reject_v unworthy_a phil._n i_o answer_v with_o detegere_fw-la pamelius_n that_o the_o people_n be_v say_v to_o have_v power_n to_o elect_v or_o reject_v because_o they_o give_v testimony_n of_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o party_n a_o thing_n so_o notorious_o know_v that_o the_o emperor_n alexander_n severus_n as_o severo_fw-la lampridius_n report_v when_o he_o will_v send_v any_o ruler_n to_o the_o province_n or_o make_v governor_n propose_v their_o name_n exhort_v the_o people_n that_o if_o they_o can_v object_v any_o crime_n they_o shall_v make_v just_a proof_n and_o use_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n not_o to_o do_v that_o in_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o province_n which_o christian_n do_v in_o proclaim_v their_o priest_n that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v orthod._n be_v their_o testimony_n only_o require_v and_o not_o their_o consent_n why_o then_o say_v leo_n 89._o teneatur_fw-la subscriptio_fw-la clericorum_fw-la honoratorum_fw-la testimonium_fw-la ac_fw-la ordinis_fw-la consensus_fw-la &_o plebis_fw-la that_o be_v let_v the_o subscription_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v obtain_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o honourable_a and_o consent_n of_o order_n and_o people_n phil._n it_o margina_fw-la be_v one_o thing_n if_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v require_v in_o ordination_n 2_o and_o another_o if_o their_o proper_a suffrage_n orthod._n but_o saint_n cyprian_n call_v it_o a_o just_a and_o lawful_a ordination_n which_o have_v be_v examine_v 4._o omnium_fw-la suffragio_fw-la by_o the_o suffrage_n or_o voice_n of_o all_o that_o be_v both_o of_o clergy_n and_o people_n which_o he_o exemplifi_v in_o the_o ordination_n of_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o these_o word_n 4._o cornelius_n be_v make_v bishop_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o his_o christ_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o almost_o all_o the_o clergy_n by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v then_o present_a and_o by_o the_o college_n of_o ancient_a priest_n and_o good_a man_n yea_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n be_v a_o thing_n so_o clear_o set_v down_o in_o antiquity_n that_o pamelius_n himself_o can_v deny_v they_o 68_o we_o deny_v not_o say_v he_o the_o old_a rite_n of_o elect_a bishop_n by_o which_o they_o be_v wont_n to_o be_v choose_v the_o people_n be_v present_a yea_o rather_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o people_n for_o that_o it_o be_v observe_v in_o africa_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o election_n of_o eradius_fw-la the_o successor_n of_o s._n austin_n concern_v which_o there_o be_v extant_a his_o 110._o epistle_n in_o grecce_n in_o the_o age_n of_o chrysostome_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o three_o book_n of_o priesthood_n in_o spain_n by_o this_o place_n of_o cyprian_a and_o isidor_n in_o his_o book_n of_o office_n in_o france_n by_o the_o epistle_n of_o celestinus_fw-la at_o rome_n by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v before_o upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o antonianus_n yea_o every_o where_o else_o by_o the_o 87._o epistle_n of_o leo_n and_o that_o this_o custom_n continue_v until_o gregory_n the_o first_o appear_z by_o his_o epistle_n yea_o even_o unto_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n and_o lodowick_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a enough_o out_o of_o the_o first_o book_n of_o their_o chapter_n and_o the_o same_o pamelius_n in_o another_o place_n say_v the_o manner_n of_o choose_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v often_o change_v first_o saint_n peter_n choose_v his_o successor_n linus_n cletus_n and_o clemens_n then_o anacletus_fw-la and_o the_o rest_n unto_o the_o second_o schism_n between_o damasus_n and_o vrsicinus_n be_v create_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o clergy_n &_o the_o people_n behold_v how_o pamelius_n who_o a_o little_a before_o interpret_v the_o people_n election_n in_o cyprian_a as_o though_o they_o elect_v only_o by_o way_n of_o testimony_n a_o cold_a and_o a_o hungry_a interpretation_n be_v now_o force_v to_o confess_v o_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n that_o they_o elect_v by_o way_n of_o suffrage_n yea_o and_o that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n from_o anacletus_fw-la to_o damasus_n that_o be_v from_o the_o year_n 103._o to_o the_o year_n 307._o be_v so_o elect_v wherefore_o it_o be_v most_o true_a which_o be_v affirm_v by_o our_o learned_a 313._o bishop_n presentia_fw-la plebis_fw-la apud_fw-la cyprianum_n includit_fw-la testimonium_fw-la de_fw-la vita_fw-la nec_fw-la excludit_fw-la suffragium_fw-la de_fw-la persona_fw-la i._o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n in_o cyprian_a include_v a_o testimony_n of_o their_o life_n and_o exclude_v not_o a_o suffrage_n of_o their_o person_n phil._n there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o suffrage_n the_o former_a of_o 136._o petition_n consent_n or_o testimony_n the_o latter_a of_o power_n or_o authority_n the_o former_a belong_v to_o the_o people_n the_o latter_a do_v not_o ortho_n if_o one_o make_v petition_n give_v consent_n or_o testimony_n be_v this_o to_o give_v a_o voice_n or_o suffrage_n sure_o this_o be_v a_o delude_a distinction_n phil._n it_o be_v say_v of_o lucius_n who_o be_v intrude_v into_o the_o place_n of_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n 22._o not_o a_o assembly_n of_o orthodox_n bishop_n not_o the_o suffrage_n of_o true_a clergy_n man_n nor_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o people_n make_v he_o bishop_n as_o it_o be_v command_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a sanction_n where_o you_o see_v that_o suffrage_n be_v ascribe_v to_o clergy_n man_n and_o only_o desire_v or_o petition_n to_o the_o people_n orthod._n in_o a_o roman_a council_n hold_v under_o sylvester_n it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o priest_n may_v be_v ordain_v bishop_n 299._o s●_n vota_fw-la populi_fw-la &_o cleri_fw-la concurrerint_fw-la if_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n concur_v where_o you_o see_v that_o desire_n or_o request_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o clergy_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o people_n moreover_o you_o hear_v out_o of_o cyprian_a that_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n phil._n the_o clergy_n give_v suffrage_n of_o power_n and_o authority_n so_o do_v not_o the_o people_n for_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o admit_v whosoever_o the_o people_n require_v orthod._n neither_o be_v the_o people_n compel_v to_o receive_v whosoever_o the_o bishop_n elect_v pope_n leo_n command_v 5._o ut_fw-la nullus_fw-la invitis_fw-la &_o non_fw-la petenti●us_fw-la ordinetur_fw-la that_o no_o b._n be_v ordain_v to_o the_o people_n against_o their_o will_n and_o not_o require_v it_o phil._n pamelius_n say_v 68_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o suffrage_n only_o be_v grant_v to_o 3._o the_o people_n and_o not_o the_o election_n which_o use_v to_o be_v by_o subscription_n orthod._n in_o the_o day_n of_o 26._o gregory_n the_o great_a when_o a_o bishopric_n be_v void_a he_o use_v to_o admonish_v the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o that_o city_n to_o agree_v in_o the_o election_n which_o be_v do_v there_o be_v make_v a_o 27._o solemn_a decree_n strengthen_v with_o subscription_n of_o all_o and_o send_v to_o the_o consecrator_n where_o we_o must_v observe_v these_o word_n the_o subscription_n of_o all_o not_o of_o the_o clergy_n alone_o but_o of_o all_o that_o be_v of_o all_o the_o electour_n both_o clergy_n and_o people_n wherefore_o the_o people_n do_v then_o choose_v with_o the_o clergy_n even_o by_o suffrage_n of_o subscription_n phil._n true_a but_o this_o be_v by_o the_o pope_n permission_n orth._n what_o permission_n have_v s._n aust._n from_o the_o pope_n in_o elect_v eradius_fw-la his_o successor_n when_o he_o 1●9_n desire_v the_o people_n so_o many_o as_o can_v to_o subscribe_v and_o the_o people_n cry_v fiat_fw-la fiat_fw-la 25._o time_n or_o the_o people_n &_o roman_a army_n which_o subscribe_v
according_a to_o the_o ancient_a and_o holy_a ecclesiastical_a law_n moreover_o his_o noble_a successor_n what_o do_v they_o when_o the_o rebel_n rodolph_n be_v slay_v in_o the_o field_n they_o arm_v the_o 1093._o son_n against_o their_o own_o father_n first_o conrade_z the●_n henry_n who_o take_v his_o own_o father_n prisoner_n and_o bring_v he_o to_o such_o misery_n that_o he_o be_v glad_a to_o beg_v for_o victual_n in_o a_o church_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v found_v promise_v to_o earn_v they_o by_o do_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o clerk_n in_o serve_v the_o quire_n which_o not_o obtain_v he_o pine_v away_o and_o die_v for_o sorrow_n be_v this_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a and_o holy_a ecclesiastical_a law_n neither_o do_v the_o pope_n malice_n stay_v here_o their_o successor_n pope_n paschall_n the_o second_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v 240._o dig_v out_o of_o his_o grave_n and_o to_o lie_v unbury_v by_o the_o space_n of_o five_o year_n be_v this_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a and_o holy_a ecclesiastical_a law_n yet_o after_o all_o these_o exploit_n so_o valiant_o perform_v pope_n paschall_n be_v glad_a to_o restore_v again_o the_o 18._o privilege_n of_o investiture_n to_o his_o son_n henry_n be_v the_o five_o king_n and_o the_o 4_o emperor_n of_o that_o name_n phil._n this_o privilege_n may_v be_v call_v a_o praviledge_n for_o the_o emperor_n take_v he_o prisoner_n and_o constrain_v he_o to_o it_o by_o force_n and_o violence_n but_o when_o he_o be_v enlarge_v he_o curse_v both_o the_o privilege_n and_o the_o emperor_n in_o two_o roman_a 1314._o counsel_n the_o one_o hold_v in_o the_o year_n 1112._o the_o other_o in_o the_o year_n 1116._o ortho_n the_o emperor_n inforce_v he_o not_o to_o any_o thing_n unlawful_a but_o to_o observe_v the_o ancient_a canon_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n both_o of_o the_o church_n and_o empire_n this_o the_o emperor_n may_v just_o require_v and_o the_o pope_n may_v yield_v unto_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n so_o paschal_n with_o sixteen_o of_o his_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n who_o name_n 19_o baronius_n set_v down_o out_o of_o petrus_n diaconus_fw-la bound_v themselves_o by_o a_o solemn_a oath_n sub_fw-la anathemate_fw-la to_o perform_v it_o notwithstanding_o when_o he_o be_v once_o set_v at_o liberty_n the_o pope_n play_v the_o pope_n curse_v the_o emperor_n and_o revoke_v his_o grant_n with_o open_a perjury_n phil._n the_o emperor_n himself_o have_v no_o great_a confidence_n in_o this_o grant_n and_o therefore_o he_o relinquish_v it_o to_o calixtus_n the_o second_o orth._n what_o shall_v he_o do_v it_o be_v now_o common_o teach_v that_o investiture_n belong_v not_o to_o lay_v man_n it_o be_v embrace_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v prince_n for_o deny_v whereof_o 1085._o vecilo_n archbish._n of_o mentz_n be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n he_o see_v his_o father_n example_n fresh_a bleed_v before_o his_o eye_n he_o be_v in_o danger_n every_o day_n to_o be_v turn_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o pope_n be_v continual_o flash_v their_o excommunication_n in_o his_o face_n first_o pope_n paschall_n than_o gelasius_n after_o he_o calixtus_n so_o at_o last_o weary_v and_o tire_v out_o he_o be_v 2._o compel_v to_o redeem_v his_o peace_n and_o rather_o to_o loose_v investiture_n then_o the_o empire_n itself_o thus_o the_o authority_n which_o be_v for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n practise_v by_o the_o greek_a roman_a and_o german_a emperor_n ratify_v by_o clement_n the_o 2._o with_o a_o council_n by_o leo_n the_o 8._o with_o a_o council_n by_o adrian_n the_o 1._o with_o a_o council_n and_o before_o they_o all_o by_o pope_n vigilius_n and_o before_o he_o by_o the_o approbation_n of_o those_o ancient_a and_o better_a time_n be_v now_o wrest_v and_o extort_a from_o he_o by_o perjury_n curse_v and_o ban_v and_o as_o they_o exclude_v the_o emperor_n reduce_v election_n to_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n so_o afterward_o they_o exclude_v the_o people_n and_o bring_v they_o only_o to_o the_o clergy_n after_o that_o they_o exclude_v the_o clergy_n and_o bring_v they_o only_o to_o the_o cardinal_n since_o which_o time_n they_o have_v be_v as_o monstrous_a pope_n as_o ever_o be_v before_o namely_o 89._o boniface_n the_o eight_o who_o enter_v like_o a_o fox_n reign_v like_o a_o lion_n and_o die_v like_o a_o dog_n john_n the_o 23._o who_o be_v call_v a_o devil_n incarnate_a and_o alexander_n the_o six_o who_o be_v worse_o than_o they_o both_o chron._n of_o all_o the_o schism_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o 29._o say_v onuphrius_n be_v the_o worst_a and_o the_o long_a continue_v 50._o year_n sometime_o two_o pope_n sometime_o three_o reign_v at_o once_o which_o proceed_v from_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o cardinal_n the_o emperor_n be_v exclude_v who_o shall_v have_v repress_v they_o and_o if_o at_o last_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n have_v not_o interpose_v his_o authority_n call_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o put_v down_o 3._o pope_n by_o this_o time_n as_o a_o learned_a 5._o man_n say_v your_o church_n may_v have_v have_v as_o many_o pope_n at_o once_o as_o the_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n have_v head_n hitherto_o of_o rome_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n when_o nazianzen_n have_v refuse_v the_o bishopric_n of_o constantinople_n 8._o theodosius_n the_o elder_a command_v the_o bishop_n to_o give_v he_o in_o writing_n the_o name_n of_o such_o as_o they_o think_v fit_a for_o the_o place_n reserve_v to_o himself_o the_o power_n of_o elect_v one_o out_o of_o all_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n at_o constantinople_n a_o ancient_a and_o reverend_a old_a man_n nectarius_n by_o name_n who_o be_v about_o to_o return_v to_o tarsus_n come_v to_o diodorus_n the_o bishop_n thereof_o to_o know_v whether_o he_o will_v have_v any_o thing_n thither_o diodorus_n on_o a_o sudden_a like_n the_o behaviour_n of_o the_o man_n though_o a_o stranger_n unto_o he_o show_v he_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n pray_v he_o to_o remember_v he_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o name_n the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n smile_v at_o the_o conceit_n of_o diodorus_n because_o many_o man_n of_o eminent_a note_n be_v nominate_v for_o this_o election_n yet_o for_o fashion_n sake_n to_o please_v diodorus_n he_o put_v nectarius_n in_o among_o the_o rest_n and_o place_v he_o last_o the_o emperor_n have_v read_v over_o the_o catalogue_n make_v a_o pause_n at_o the_o name_n of_o nectarius_n and_o make_v a_o mark_n with_o his_o finger_n he_o read_v they_o over_o again_o and_o choose_v nectarius_n and_o when_o every_o man_n inquire_v who_o this_o nectarius_n be_v it_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o baptize_v a_o thing_n which_o be_v unknown_a to_o the_o emperor_n unknown_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n &_o unknown_a to_o diodorus_n yet_o the_o emperor_n have_v make_v his_o choice_n will_v not_o be_v remove_v and_o the_o council_n then_o assemble_v pronounce_v he_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n even_o while_o he_o be_v yet_o in_o his_o christen_n vesture_n after_o the_o death_n of_o nectarius_n the_o clergy_n and_o people_n choose_v chrysostome_n the_o emperor_n 2._o approve_v the_o election_n and_o send_v to_o fetch_v he_o from_o antioch_n after_o the_o death_n of_o sisinnius_n though_o many_o make_v suit_n for_o philip_n and_o many_o for_o proclus_n yet_o it_o be_v the_o 29._o emperor_n pleasure_n because_o of_o some_o vain_a glorious_a person_n to_o choose_v none_o of_o that_o church_n but_o to_o send_v for_o a_o stranger_n nestorius_n from_o antioch_n after_o the_o death_n of_o maximianus_n theodosius_n the_o emperor_n lest_o any_o tumult_n shall_v be_v raise_v in_o the_o church_n procure_v the_o bishop_n then_o present_a to_o install_v proclus_n in_o the_o bishop_n seat_n even_o while_o the_o corpse_n of_o maximianus_n be_v as_o yet_o above_o ground_n which_o 39_o socrates_n commend_v in_o the_o emperor_n as_o a_o point_n of_o wisdom_n phil._n you_o shall_v mark_v what_o follow_v in_o socrates_n to_o wit_n that_o celestinus_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v consent_n to_o these_o proceed_n orthod._n when_o nestorius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v depose_v and_o proclus_n in_o fair_a possibility_n to_o obtain_v the_o place_n some_o stand_v up_o 34._o allege_v against_o he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o be_v translate_v from_o one_o see_v to_o another_o whereupon_o proclus_n be_v repel_v and_o maximianus_n choose_v wherefore_o after_o the_o death_n of_o maximianus_n when_o celestine_n hear_v that_o proclus_n be_v install_v he_o write_v to_o cyrill_n and_o other_o signify_v that_o translation_n of_o bishop_n be_v lawful_a and_o not_o against_o the_o canon_n so_o celestine_n only_o give_v his_o judgement_n but_o assume_v no_o authority_n in_o the_o election_n which_o be_v
already_o perform_v by_o imperial_a authority_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n no_o man_n contradict_v they_o and_o the_o very_a last_o of_o these_o example_n be_v above_o 300._o year_n before_o the_o grant_n of_o adrian_n yea_o above_o 100_o year_n before_o vigilius_n now_o from_o the_o imperial_a city_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n chap._n x._o of_o the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n in_o the_o 16._o council_n at_o 157._o toledo_n it_o be_v conclude_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n do_v not_o set_v his_o help_a hand_n to_o the_o extirpation_n of_o idolatry_n he_o shall_v be_v depose_v alio_fw-la ibidem_fw-la principali_fw-la electione_n constituto_fw-la another_o be_v appoint_v there_o by_o the_o prince_n election_n this_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o year_n 693._o fourscore_o year_n before_o investiture_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o emperor_n charles_n by_o pope_n adrian_n and_o before_o that_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o 12._o council_n of_o 104._o toledo_n as_o follow_v it_o have_v please_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n and_o galicia_n that_o save_v the_o privilege_n of_o every_o province_n it_o shall_v henceforth_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o bishop_n of_o toledo_n to_o set_v up_o such_o prelate_n in_o the_o see_v of_o their_o predecessor_n and_o to_o choose_v such_o successor_n for_o bishop_n depart_v as_o the_o princely_a power_n shall_v elect_a and_o find_v worthy_a by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o foresay_a bishop_n of_o toledo_n this_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o year_n 681._o almost_o a_o 100_o year_n before_o pope_n adrian_n and_o yet_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v authority_n to_o elect_a before_o this_o council_n which_o may_v appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o 60._o baronius_n we_o must_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o point_n that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o goth_n in_o spain_n do_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o nomination_n of_o such_o bishop_n as_o be_v to_o be_v make_v which_o nomination_n of_o they_o make_v by_o the_o king_n be_v refer_v to_o a_o council_n that_o they_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n whether_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o a_o bishopric_n these_o thing_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o monument_n of_o ancient_a writer_n now_o because_o much_o time_n pass_v before_o they_o can_v be_v dispatch_v by_o reason_n whereof_o the_o see_v be_v long_o vacant_a therefore_o the_o council_n make_v the_o decree_n thus_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n be_v translate_v to_o the_o archbishop_n but_o the_o king_n authority_n be_v the_o same_o as_o before_o and_o have_v so_o be_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o goth_n phil._n indeed_o 12._o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o goth_n it_o be_v in_o the_o king_n and_o so_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o this_o present_a age_n by_o the_o indulgence_n of_o the_o pope_n orthod._n the_o ancient_a king_n of_o the_o goth_n be_v arrian_n and_o enemy_n to_o christ_n do_v they_o elect_v bishop_n by_o indulgence_n of_o pope_n phil._n they_o do_v it_o by_o tyranny_n will_v you_o take_v a_o pattern_n from_o arrian_n and_o tyrant_n orthod._n the_o arrian_n of_o spain_n be_v 706_o convert_v in_o the_o year_n 589._o and_o profess_v the_o faith_n in_o the_o three_o council_n of_o toledo_n yet_o the_o orthodox_n king_n continue_v their_o authority_n in_o election_n shall_v we_o say_v that_o they_o take_v a_o pattern_n from_o tyrant_n and_o arrian_n neither_o do_v the_o arrian_n king_n offend_v in_o that_o they_o elect_v bishop_n but_o in_o that_o they_o elect_a arrian_n bishop_n neither_o be_v a_o orthodox_n prince_n bind_v to_o relinquish_v his_o own_o right_a because_o it_o have_v be_v abuse_v by_o heretical_a prince_n for_o the_o right_n of_o prince_n be_v most_o ancient_a derive_v neither_o from_o pope_n nor_o arrian_n but_o from_o the_o pattern_n of_o 35._o solomon_n who_o choose_v sadok_n high_a priest_n above_o 1000_o year_n before_o either_o arrian_n or_o papist_n be_v bear_v hitherto_o of_o spain_n chap._n xi_o of_o the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n in_o france_n the_o king_n have_v the_o choice_n of_o bishop_n almost_o 300._o year_n before_o the_o empire_n come_v to_o their_o hand_n for_o their_o first_o christian_a king_n clodoveus_fw-la convert_v in_o the_o year_n 499_o 31._o elect_v dinifius_n bishop_n of_o turone_n after_o he_o succeed_v childibertus_fw-la who_o make_v his_o brethren_n clodomer_n theodorick_n and_o clotharius_n partaker_n of_o his_o kingdom_n all_o which_o use_v the_o same_o authority_n for_o by_o the_o commandment_n 17_o of_o clodomer_n omasius_fw-la be_v make_v bishop_n of_o turone_n after_o dinifius_n by_o the_o 2._o commandment_n of_o theodorick_n quintianus_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o aruerne_n by_o the_o commandment_n 15._o of_o clotharius_n cato_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v bishop_n of_o turone_n which_o when_o he_o refuse_v and_o afterward_o will_v have_v have_v it_o the_o king_n repel_v he_o after_o the_o death_n of_o clotharius_n reign_v his_o son_n cheribert_n who_o 18_o make_v pascentius_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n but_o why_o shall_v i_o reckon_v up_o any_o more_o there_o be_v a_o world_n of_o example_n record_v by_o gregorius_n turonensis_n &_o collect_v from_o he_o by_o one_o of_o our_o learned_a 15._o bishop_n all_o which_o be_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o afterwards_o when_o the_o french_a king_n become_v roman_a emperor_n pope_n adrian_n decree_v and_o define_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v not_o only_a investiture_n but_o also_o the_o dispose_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v as_o have_v be_v declare_v and_o although_o lodowick_n the_o son_n of_o charles_n be_v say_v to_o have_v renounce_v the_o right_n of_o choose_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o as_o the_o 43._o court_n of_o paris_n affirm_v he_o always_o retain_v investiture_n neither_o have_v the_o king_n of_o france_n of_o ancient_a time_n authority_n in_o bishopric_n only_o but_o in_o benefice_n also_o si_fw-la 11._o ad_fw-la priscorum_fw-la institutorum_fw-la normam_fw-la say_v duarenus_n omne_fw-la exigere_fw-la velimus_fw-la nullum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o gallia_n beneficium_fw-la nullum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ministerium_fw-la quod_fw-la absque_fw-la regis_fw-la consensu_fw-la cviquam_fw-la deferri_fw-la possit_fw-la if_o we_o will_v examine_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ancient_a constitution_n there_o be_v in_o france_n no_o benefice_n no_o ministry_n of_o any_o church_n which_o can_v be_v confer_v upon_o any_o man_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o king_n notwithstanding_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o process_n of_o time_n that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o provision_n reservation_n and_o expectative_a grace_n make_v lamentable_a desolation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o redress_v whereof_o when_o the_o council_n of_o basill_n have_v publish_v most_o worthy_a 72_o decree_n pope_n eugenius_n go_v about_o to_o disannul_v they_o wherefore_o 11._o charles_n the_o 7._o king_n of_o france_n at_o the_o supplication_n of_o the_o council_n and_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o own_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o synod_n undertake_v to_o protect_v they_o to_o which_o purpose_n he_o set_v out_o that_o noble_a constitution_n call_v the_o pragmatical_a sanction_n which_o be_v receive_v with_o such_o a_o applause_n of_o all_o good_a man_n that_o the_o like_a be_v never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n this_o pragmatical_a sanction_n be_v fit_o call_v by_o a_o great_a supra_fw-la learned_a man_n the_o palladium_n of_o france_n for_o as_o the_o image_n of_o pallas_n be_v say_v to_o fall_v down_o from_o heaven_n among_o the_o trojan_n so_o this_o sanction_n seem_v to_o be_v send_v from_o heaven_n by_o divine_a providence_n among_o the_o frenchman_n and_o as_o apollo_n do_v prophesy_v that_o the_o remove_n of_o the_o palladium_n will_v be_v the_o destruction_n of_o troy_n so_o wise_a man_n presage_v that_o the_o take_v away_o of_o this_o sanction_n will_v portend_v great_a calamity_n to_o the_o church_n of_o france_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o the_o pope_n will_v never_o be_v quiet_a till_o they_o have_v if_o not_o whole_o vanquish_v yet_o wonderful_o weaken_v it_o especial_o pius_n the_o 2._o who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n but_o now_o be_v pope_n he_o be_v become_v another_o man_n neither_o want_v there_o some_o which_o to_o please_v the_o pope_n oppose_v themselves_o against_o it_o who_o subtlety_n and_o sophism_n be_v answer_v by_o that_o famous_a canonist_n archbishop_n panormitan_n who_o be_v himself_o also_o one_o of_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o basil._n yea_o the_o court_n of_o 18._o paris_n offer_v a_o book_n to_o lodowick_n the_o eleven_o wherein_o they_o declare_v how_o by_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o sanction_n four_o mischief_n will_v follow_v the_o first_o a_o confusion_n of_o the_o
symonist_n these_o thing_n say_v aegidius_n hispanus_n the_o cardinal_n and_o other_o who_o conscience_n do_v touch_v they_o give_v council_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o shall_v wink_n and_o dissemble_v the_o matter_n lest_o some_o tumult_n shall_v be_v raise_v upon_o this_o occasion_n especial_o because_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o once_o there_o shall_v a_o departure_n come_v the_o same_o robert_n lie_v upon_o his_o deathbed_n sigh_v say_v thus_o 847._o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o gain_v soul_n therefore_o if_o any_o man_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o destroy_v soul_n be_v not_o he_o worthy_o call_v antichrist_n the_o lord_n in_o 6._o day_n make_v the_o whole_a world_n but_o he_o labour_v more_o than_o 30_o year_n to_o repair_v man_n be_v not_o therefore_o this_o destroyer_n of_o soul_n worthy_a to_o be_v judge_v a_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o a_o antichrist_n the_o pope_n blush_v not_o impudent_o to_o disannul_v the_o privilege_n of_o former_a pope_n his_o predecessor_n by_o this_o bar_n non_fw-fr obstante_fw-la which_o be_v not_o do_v without_o their_o prejudice_n and_o manifest_a injury_n for_o so_o he_o pull_v down_o that_o which_o so_o great_a and_o so_o many_o saint_n have_v build_v behold_v the_o contempt_n of_o saint_n therefore_o the_o contemner_n shall_v just_o be_v contemn_v according_a to_o that_o of_o isaiah_n woe_n to_o thou_o which_o despise_v shall_v thou_o not_o be_v despise_v who_o will_v observe_v his_o privilege_n the_o pope_n answer_v do_v thus_o defend_v his_o error_n a_o equal_a have_v no_o authority_n over_o a_o equal_a therefore_o a_o pope_n can_v bind_v i_o be_v a_o pope_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o although_o many_o other_o apostolic_a man_n have_v afflict_v the_o church_n yet_o he_o have_v compel_v it_o to_o be_v in_o bondage_n more_o grievous_o than_o other_o and_o have_v multiply_v inconvenience_n for_o the_o caursini_n be_v manifest_a usurer_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o our_o doctor_n have_v drive_v out_o of_o france_n this_o pope_n have_v raise_v up_o and_o protect_v in_o england_n and_o if_o any_o speak_v against_o they_o he_o be_v tire_v out_o with_o loss_n and_o labour_n witness_v roger_n b._n of_o london_n the_o world_n know_v that_o usury_n be_v account_v detestable_a in_o both_o testament_n and_o be_v forbid_v of_o god_n but_o now_o the_o merchant_n of_o my_o l._n the_o pope_n do_v practice_v usury_n open_o at_o london_n they_o contrive_v diverse_a grievance_n against_o ecclesiastical_a and_o religious_a person_n force_v poor_a man_n to_o lie_v and_o to_o set_v their_o seal_n to_o lie_a write_n as_o for_o example_n i_o receive_v so_o many_o mark_n by_o year_n for_o a_o 100_o pound_n and_o be_o force_v to_o make_v a_o writing_n and_o sealè_fw-la it_z in_o which_o i_o confess_v myself_o to_o have_v receive_v a_o 100_o pound_n to_o be_v pay_v at_o the_o year_n end_n and_o if_o peradventure_o thou_o will_v pay_v the_o pope_n usurer_n the_o principal_a again_o within_o a_o month_n or_o few_o day_n he_o will_v not_o receive_v it_o unless_o thou_o will_v pay_v the_o whole_a hundred_o pound_n which_o condition_n be_v heavy_a than_o any_o which_o be_v require_v of_o the_o jew_n for_o whensoever_o thou_o shall_v bring_v a_o jew_n his_o principal_n he_o will_v take_v it_o kind_o with_o so_o much_o gain_v as_o be_v answerable_a to_o the_o time_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o we_o have_v see_v one_o of_o the_o pope_n letter_n wherein_o this_o clause_n be_v insert_v that_o such_o as_o make_v their_o testament_n or_o carry_v the_o cross_n or_o yield_v aid_n to_o the_o holy-land_n shall_v receive_v so_o much_o pardon_n for_o their_o sin_n as_o they_o give_v money_n and_o we_o know_v our_o lord_n the_o pope_n write_v unto_o the_o abbot_n of_o s._n alban_n that_o he_o shall_v provide_v for_o a_o certain_a man_n call_v john_n the_o camezana_n in_o a_o competent_a benefice_n and_o short_o provision_n be_v make_v in_o a_o church_n worth_a forty_o mark_n by_o the_o year_n but_o he_o not_o content_v therewithal_o complain_v unto_o the_o pope_n who_o write_v to_o the_o same_o abbot_n to_o provide_v more_o bountiful_o for_o he_o and_o yet_o the_o pope_n reserve_v the_o donation_n of_o the_o former_a benefice_n unto_o himself_o and_o to_o pass_v over_o other_o thing_n the_o pope_n grant_v for_o secular_a favour_n that_o one_o may_v obtain_v a_o bishopric_n and_o not_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o a_o everlasting_a elect_a which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o that_o he_o shall_v receive_v the_o milk_n and_o the_o wool_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o yet_o not_o drive_v away_o the_o wolf_n matthew_n 848._o paris_n tell_v how_o this_o bishop_n robert_n grosthead_n hate_v all_o kind_n of_o enormity_n to_o wit_n all_o kind_n of_o covetousness_n all_o usury_n simony_n and_o rapine_n all_o kind_n of_o riot_n lust_n gluttony_n and_o pride_n which_o so_o reign_v in_o that_o court_n that_o this_o judgement_n be_v just_o give_v of_o it_o eius_fw-la avaritiae_fw-la totus_fw-la non_fw-la sufficit_fw-la orbis_fw-la eius_fw-la luxuriae_fw-la meretrix_n non_fw-la sufficit_fw-la omnis_fw-la and_o be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n he_o endeavour_v to_o ibid●m_fw-la prosecute_v how_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n hope_v that_o money_n will_v flow_v like_o the_o river_n jordane_n into_o their_o mouth_n gape_v wide_o that_o they_o may_v get_v unto_o themselves_o the_o good_n both_o of_o those_o that_o die_v intestate_a and_o also_o those_o that_o die_v testate_a &_o how_o that_o they_o may_v do_v it_o the_o more_o licentious_o they_o make_v the_o king_n their_o consort_n in_o the_o rapine_n neither_o shall_v the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v deliver_v from_o this_o egyptian_a bondage_n but_o in_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o bloody_a sword_n but_o very_o these_o thing_n be_v light_a but_o short_o that_o be_v within_o three_o year_n there_o shall_v come_v more_o grievous_a in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o prophetical_a speech_n which_o he_o can_v scarce_o utter_v for_o sigh_n tear_n and_o groan_n burst_v out_o his_o tongue_n falter_v his_o breath_n fail_v and_o the_o organ_n of_o speech_n decay_v impose_v silence_n matthew_n paris_n conclude_v the_o year_n 1255._o say_v this_o 889._o year_n pass_v away_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o papal_a court_n if_o one_o do_v respect_n the_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n most_o venomous_a for_o the_o devotion_n which_o prelate_n and_o people_n use_v to_o have_v towards_o our_o mother_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o our_o father_n and_o pastor_n to_o wit_n our_o lord_n the_o pope_n give_v up_o the_o ghost_n for_o although_o that_o court_n have_v many_o time_n draw_v blood_n of_o christ_n faithful_a people_n yet_o it_o never_o wound_v they_o all_o and_o every_o one_o so_o deadly_a as_o this_o year_n and_o the_o year_n follow_v anno_fw-la 1256._o rustandus_fw-la 891._o the_o pope_n nuntio_n the_o king_n proctor_n will_v have_v the_o bishop_n to_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o a_o bill_n and_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v receive_v no_o small_a sum_n of_o money_n of_o the_o italian_a merchant_n convert_v to_o the_o good_a of_o their_o church_n which_o all_o man_n know_v to_o be_v manifest_o false_a whereupon_o they_o affirm_v and_o not_o without_o reason_n that_o to_o die_v in_o this_o cause_n be_v a_o more_o manifest_a way_n of_o martyrdom_n than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o saint_n thomas_n the_o martyr_n the_o same_o 904._o year_n certain_a abbey_n in_o england_n be_v bind_v over_o for_o the_o payment_n of_o two_o thousand_o ounce_n of_o gold_n to_o the_o pape_n merchant_n anno_fw-la 1259_o sewalus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o york_n lie_v upon_o his_o death_n bed_n lift_v his_o hand_n and_o countenance_n to_o heaven_n with_o tear_n say_v thus_o lord_n 939._o jesus_n christ_n of_o judge_n most_o just_a thy_o infallible_a judgement_n know_v how_o manifould_o the_o pope_n who_o thou_o have_v suffer_v to_o be_v set_v over_o thy_o church_n to_o govern_v it_o have_v weary_v my_o innocency_n for_o this_o cause_n as_o god_n know_v and_o the_o world_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o i_o will_v not_o admit_v to_o the_o government_n of_o church_n which_o thou_o have_v commit_v to_o i_o though_o unworthy_a such_o as_o be_v altogether_o unmeete_a &_o unknown_a notwithstanding_o lest_o the_o pope_n sentence_n although_o in_o itself_o unjust_a shall_v be_v make_v just_a by_o my_o contempt_n i_o be_v entangle_v with_o such_o band_n that_o be_v papal_a censure_n do_v humble_o desire_v to_o be_v absolve_v but_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n himself_o before_o the_o high_a and_o incorruptible_a judge_n and_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v be_v my_o witness_n how_o unjust_o he_o have_v assault_v i_o and_o how_o oft_o he_o do_v scandalize_v and_o provoke_v i_o thus_o in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o soul_n he_o write_v unto_o the_o pope_n provoke_v by_o
some_o eminent_a priesthood_n shall_v declare_v their_o faith_n to_o they_o which_o have_v obtain_v the_o like_a degree_n of_o eminent_a priesthood_n long_a time_n before_o they_o therefore_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o i_o both_o to_o submit_v myself_o unto_o you_o and_o to_o declare_v manifest_o before_o you_o the_o confession_n of_o my_o faith_n wherefore_o this_o practice_n do_v not_o mount_v one_o patriarch_n above_o the_o rest_n but_o rather_o level_v all_o of_o they_o in_o a_o equality_n and_o consequen_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o more_o power_n over_o the_o metropolitan_n of_o other_o patriarch_n than_o other_o patriarch_n over_o he_o phil._n the_o contrary_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n pelagius_n quoniam_fw-la placuit_fw-la ut_fw-la cuique_fw-la metropolitanus_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v my_o pleasure_n that_o every_o metropolitan_a which_o shall_v not_o send_v within_o three_o month_n of_o his_o consecration_n to_o show_v his_o faith_n and_o receive_v the_o pall_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o his_o place_n and_o dignitte_v wherefore_o all_o metropolitan_o be_v bind_v to_o perform_v this_o office_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n even_o all_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o he_o that_o say_v every_o one_o except_v none_o ortho_n pelagius_n mean_v every_o one_o within_o his_o own_o jurisdiction_n phil._n but_o all_o the_o world_n be_v his_o jurisdiction_n orthod._n then_o belike_o the_o pope_n be_v acknowledge_v universal_a patriarch_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pelagius_n phil._n yea_o and_o before_o pelagius_n that_o title_n be_v offer_v to_o pope_n leo_n by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n as_o s._n 38._o gregory_n witness_v orthod._n the_o whole_a council_n be_v extant_a and_o we_o find_v no_o such_o matter_n phil._n in_o the_o three_o 70._o action_n there_o be_v three_o epistle_n of_o three_o sundry_a grecian_n all_o which_o begin_v thus_o to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a leo_n the_o universal_a archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n orthod._n you_o may_v have_v say_v 75._o four_o but_o what_o if_o a_o few_o poor_a suitor_n hungry_a grecian_n put_v a_o flatter_a title_n in_o their_o supplication_n do_v this_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v offer_v by_o a_o council_n one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o priest_n two_o be_v deacon_n and_o one_o a_o lay_v man_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o bishop_n nor_o yet_o in_o your_o own_o judgement_n have_v a_o voice_n in_o the_o council_n phil._n 80_o paschasinus_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o his_o subscription_n call_v leo_n the_o pope_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n orthod._n if_o that_o title_n be_v aequivalent_fw-la to_o this_o which_o may_v be_v doubt_v yet_o it_o be_v only_o give_v by_o the_o pope_n parasite_n and_o not_o by_o the_o council_n phil._n it_o be_v give_v marginal_a audiente_fw-la &_o probante_fw-la universali_fw-la synodo_fw-la i._o the_o general_a council_n hear_v and_o approve_v it_o orthod._n this_o i_o hear_v you_o say_v but_o i_o will_v hear_v you_o prove_v it_o phil._n tert●um_fw-la although_o the_o council_n decree_v nothing_o concern_v that_o matter_n yet_o it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o the_o give_v of_o the_o title_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o displease_v to_o the_o council_n see_v no_o man_n reprehend_v it_o ortho_n they_o do_v not_o reprehend_v it_o but_o do_v they_o therefore_o commend_v it_o in_o the_o council_n of_o 624._o lateran_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o pope_n a_o archbishop_n in_o a_o sermon_n speak_v of_o a_o pope_n say_v he_o have_v power_n above_o all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n what_o say_v you_o do_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n approve_v this_o blasphemy_n for_o they_o do_v not_o reprove_v it_o if_o their_o silence_n be_v no_o argument_n of_o approbation_n than_o neither_o be_v the_o silence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n yea_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o they_o neither_o do_v use_v it_o nor_o approve_v it_o in_o the_o sixteen_o action_n they_o write_v a_o synodall_n epistle_n to_o pope_n leo_n at_o which_o time_n if_o ever_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o they_o shall_v adorn_v he_o with_o this_o title_n which_o notwithstanding_o they_o use_v not_o but_o style_v he_o 139._o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o the_o roman_n neither_o can_v they_o approve_v it_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o you_o give_v it_o unless_o they_o shall_v cross_v and_o contradict_v themselves_o for_o you_o intend_v by_o that_o title_n to_o advance_v he_o above_o other_o patriarch_n whereas_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n give_v no_o great_a 133._o privilege_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o as_o the_o council_n do_v never_o give_v the_o title_n so_o pope_n leo_n do_v never_o use_v it_o phil._n yes_o in_o his_o 54._o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n martian_a against_o anatolius_n in_o the_o very_a inscription_n of_o the_o epistle_n he_o use_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a orth._n he_o use_v it_o thus_o leo_fw-la episc_fw-la romanae_fw-la &_o universalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la i._o leo_fw-la b._n of_o the_o roman_a &_o universal_a church_n so_o he_o apply_v it_o not_o to_o himself_o but_o to_o the_o church_n phil._n if_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n than_o he_o be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n orthod._n that_o do_v not_o follow_v for_o the_o 8._o council_n of_o sardica_n in_o their_o synodall_n epistle_n to_o all_o bishop_n call_v they_o bishop_n and_o colleague_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n be_v not_o catholic_a the_o same_o with_o universal_a and_o yet_o their_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o call_v they_o universal_a bishop_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o meaning_n of_o pope_n leo_n to_o call_v himself_o so_o if_o we_o believe_v pope_n 38._o gregory_n affirm_v that_o never_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n do_v use_v so_o profane_a a_o title_n phil._n 151._o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o not_o any_o of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v use_v the_o title_n of_o ecumenical_a of_o a_o solemn_a custom_n and_o continual_o in_o all_o their_o subscription_n yet_o some_o of_o they_o sometime_o use_v it_o orthod._n then_o some_o of_o they_o sometime_o use_v a_o profane_a title_n phil._n universal_a responde●_n bishop_n may_v be_v take_v two_o way_n first_o for_o he_o which_o be_v the_o only_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n exclude_v all_o other_o in_o which_o sense_n 69._o s._n gregory_n say_v if_o one_o be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n it_o remain_v that_o you_o be_v no_o bishop_n second_o for_o he_o that_o have_v a_o general_a care_n of_o he_o whole_a church_n yet_o so_o that_o other_o bishop_n retain_v their_o place_n and_o dignity_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n s._n gregory_n call_v it_o profane_a in_o the_o second_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n orthod._n concern_v the_o first_o 38._o gregory_n have_v say_v that_o the_o name_n of_o universality_n be_v offer_v by_o the_o council_n add_v immediate_o that_o never_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n do_v use_v so_o profane_a a_o title_n so_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o call_v that_o very_a title_n profane_a which_o as_o he_o say_v be_v offer_v by_o the_o council_n which_o justify_v my_o former_a answer_n for_o unless_o you_o will_v accuse_v the_o council_n of_o profaneness_n you_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o gregory_n speak_v improper_o ascribe_v that_o to_o the_o council_n which_o be_v only_o do_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o a_o few_o supplicant_n in_o the_o council_n moreover_o if_o this_o profane_a title_n exclude_v all_o other_o from_o be_v bishop_n than_o the_o council_n consist_v of_o 630._o bishop_n in_o give_v this_o title_n shall_v exclude_v themselves_o from_o be_v bishop_n which_o be_v absurd_a see_v in_o their_o subscription_n they_o entitle_v themselves_o bishop_n concern_v the_o second_o if_o he_o be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n which_o have_v care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o s._n paul_n be_v universal_a bishop_n as_o well_o as_o s._n peter_n 28._o for_o he_o have_v care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n then_o athanasius_n be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n for_o 52._o s._n basill_n say_v he_o carry_v the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n phil._n peradventure_o he_o mean_v that_o he_o carry_v the_o care_n of_o all_o within_o the_o patriarchdome_n of_o alexandria_n orthod._n nor_o of_o they_o only_o but_o of_o other_o also_o for_o s._n basill_n say_v 48._o the_o whole_a state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n depend_v upon_o thou_o so_o though_o his_o jurisdiction_n be_v confine_v within_o the_o patriarchdome_n of_o alexandria_n yet_o he_o carry_v a_o tender_a care_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ._n wherefore_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n belong_v as_o well_o to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n as_o to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n moreover_o the_o very_a title_n of_o
it_o be_v grant_v to_o our_o priest_n not_o to_o purge_v the_o leprosy_n of_o the_o body_n but_o the_o spot_n of_o the_o soul_n i_o do_v not_o say_v to_o examine_v they_o be_v purge_v but_o altogether_o to_o purge_v they_o in_o this_o place_n to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n saint_n chrysostome_n do_v so_o plain_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o nothing_o at_o all_o can_v be_v answer_v for_o they_o orthod._n do_v the_o priest_n altogether_o purge_v the_o spot_n of_o the_o soul_n then_o it_o seem_v when_o the_o penitent_a be_v present_v before_o the_o priest_n his_o soul_n be_v spot_v but_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o priest_n absolution_n the_o spot_n be_v present_o wash_v away_o but_o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o who_o do_v the_o priest_n forgive_v and_o absolve_v he_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v absolve_v or_o he_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o absolve_v if_o the_o priest_n absolve_v he_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v absolve_v than_o he_o do_v not_o altogether_o purge_v the_o spot_n of_o the_o soul_n no_o nor_o proper_o purge_v they_o at_o all_o but_o only_o declare_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v purge_v they_o if_o you_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n absolve_v he_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o absolve_v than_o he_o shall_v be_v forgive_v who_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o forgive_v which_o be_v most_o absurd_a again_o do_v the_o priest_n before_o he_o pronounce_v absolution_n see_v any_o token_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n if_o he_o see_v none_o then_o how_o dare_v he_o pronounce_v absolution_n and_o if_o he_o see_v any_o then_o the_o party_n be_v already_o purge_v whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o absolution_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v only_a declaratorie_n therefore_o the_o speech_n of_o chrysostome_n can_v be_v take_v proper_o but_o his_o meaning_n must_v be_v this_o that_o the_o priest_n see_v he_o bring_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o consequent_o purge_v certify_v his_o conscience_n that_o he_o be_v altogether_o purge_v and_o his_o sin_n wash_v away_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ._n phil._n a●●liamus_fw-la gregorie_n perc●ls●s_n nazianzen_n say_v that_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n have_v subject_v 7_o temporal_a governor_n to_o his_o authority_n and_o throne_n and_o that_o his_o power_n be_v more_o ample_a and_o perfect_a than_o they_o orthod._n the_o prince_n as_o supreme_a governor_n may_v by_o his_o royal_a authority_n establish_v true_a religion_n command_v both_o priest_n and_o people_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n and_o punish_v those_o which_o do_v otherwise_o by_o temporal_a punishment_n but_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n and_o the_o exercise_v of_o spiritual_a censure_n belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o as_o the_o prelate_n ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o sword_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o prince_n so_o a_o virtuous_a prince_n submit_v himself_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prelate_n but_o do_v this_o prove_v that_o the_o priest_n forgive_v sin_n proper_o phil._n ambr._n saint_n ambrose_n prove_v 2._o that_o christ_n give_v to_o the_o priest_n power_n to_o forgive_v 8_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o speak_v of_o true_a power_n and_o not_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o preach_v both_o because_o the_o novatian_n do_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o gospel_n may_v be_v preach_v to_o all_o man_n but_o they_o deny_v that_o the_o priest_n may_v forgive_v sin_n by_o authority_n and_o also_o because_o saint_n 7._o ambrose_n say_v that_o christ_n have_v communicate_v to_o the_o priest_n that_o power_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v orthod._n the_o novatian_n do_v think_v that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o bind_v but_o not_o to_o loose_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o s._n ambrose_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o s._n 52._o cyprian_n be_v request_v by_o antonianus_n to_o unfold_v the_o heresy_n of_o novatian_n show_v that_o he_o deny_v that_o such_o as_o be_v fall_v shall_v be_v admit_v any_o more_o into_o the_o church_n 107._o baronius_n say_v that_o he_o grow_v to_o such_o rashness_n as_o to_o deny_v that_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n therefore_o as_o they_o deny_v that_o priest_n may_v forgive_v sin_n by_o authority_n so_o they_o deny_v that_o they_o may_v forgive_v sin_n by_o way_n of_o declaration_n for_o they_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n wherefore_o saint_n ambrose_n in_o confute_v the_o novatian_n have_v no_o more_o confute_v our_o opinion_n than_o he_o have_v confute_v you_o phil._n hieron_n saint_n jerom_n speak_v of_o priest_n say_v heliodorum_n clave_n regni_fw-la caelorum_fw-la habentes_fw-la 9_o quodam_fw-la modo_fw-la ante_fw-la diem_fw-la iudicij_fw-la iudicant_fw-la i._o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o judge_v after_o a_o sort_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n s._n 9_o austin_n expound_v these_o word_n i_o see_v seat_n and_o they_o that_o sit_v upon_o they_o and_o judgement_n be_v give_v they_o say_v thus_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o last_o judgement_n but_o the_o seat_n of_o prelate_n and_o prelate_n themselves_o by_o who_o the_o church_n be_v now_o govern_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v neither_o can_v we_o better_o apply_v it_o to_o any_o judgement_n give_v then_o to_o that_o of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v whatsoever_o you_o bind_v in_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v what_o be_v it_o to_o i_o to_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v without_o do_v not_o you_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v within_o orthod._n according_a to_o saint_n jerom_n the_o bishop_n or_o priest_n do_v bind_v or_o loose_v as_o the_o levitical_a priest_n do_v make_v the_o leper_n clean_a and_o unclean_a which_o in_o his_o judgement_n be_v not_o proper_o but_o because_o they_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o leprous_a and_o not_o leprous_a and_o shall_v discern_v who_o be_v clean_a and_o unclean_a this_o be_v that_o which_o saint_n jerom_o mean_v when_o he_o say_v they_o judge_v after_o a_o sort_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n which_o kind_n of_o judgement_n we_o acknowledge_v phil._n in_o judgement_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n causae_fw-la cognitio_fw-la &_o sententiae_fw-la dictio_fw-la the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o pronounce_v of_o the_o sentence_n have_v you_o these_o two_o orthod._n we_o have_v for_o first_o the_o party_n make_v a_o profession_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o repentance_n unto_o the_o minister_n here_o be_v causae_fw-la cognitio_fw-la and_o then_o the_o minister_n by_o the_o authority_n which_o christ_n have_v commit_v unto_o he_o pronounce_v forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n here_o be_v sententiae_fw-la dictio_fw-la this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o if_o by_o causae_fw-la cognitio_fw-la you_o mean_v a_o particular_a enumeration_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n as_o a_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o by_o sententiae_fw-la dictio_fw-la understand_v such_o a_o sentence_n as_o impose_v work_n of_o penance_n satisfactory_a to_o god_n when_o you_o can_v prove_v they_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n we_o will_v embrace_v they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o know_v they_o not_o hitherto_o of_o saint_n jerom._n the_o same_o answer_n also_o may_v serve_v for_o the_o place_n of_o saint_n austin_n if_o he_o mean_v the_o same_o judgement_n phil._n pope_n innocent_a innocent_a the_o first_o say_v 7._o de_fw-fr pondere_fw-la aestimando_fw-la delictorum_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la 10_o est_fw-la iudicare_fw-la etc._n etc._n 1._o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o priest_n to_o judge_v what_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v heavy_a orthod._n he_o must_v discern_v the_o deepness_n of_o the_o wound_n before_o he_o can_v apply_v the_o medicine_n but_o how_o do_v this_o prove_v the_o point_n in_o question_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o priest_n forgive_v sin_n proper_o phil._n saint_n gregory_n gregory_n say_v euangelia_fw-la principatum_fw-la superni_fw-la iudicij_fw-la sortiuntur_fw-la ut_fw-la vice_fw-la 11_o dei_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la peccata_fw-la retineant_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la relaxent_fw-la i._o the_o disciple_n obtain_v a_o principality_n of_o judgement_n from_o above_o that_o they_o may_v in_o god_n stead_n retain_v the_o sin_n of_o some_o and_o release_v the_o sin_n of_o other_o orthod._n they_o be_v judge_n to_o discern_v sin_n that_o so_o they_o may_v apply_v the_o medicine_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o offender_n yea_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o church_n may_v enjoin_v a_o outward_a penance_n for_o the_o further_o mortify_v of_o sin_n testify_v their_o inward_a remorse_n and_o for_o the_o more_o ample_a satisfaction_n both_o of_o
he_o by_o not_o do_v that_o which_o he_o command_v and_o by_o hinder_v he_o from_o execute_v his_o will_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o judge_v he_o or_o punish_v he_o or_o depose_v he_o which_o belong_v to_o none_o but_o the_o superior_a orthod._n and_o you_o must_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o punish_v by_o virtue_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o a_o party_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o hinder_v the_o injury_n which_o the_o party_n endeavour_v actuallie_o to_o infer_v as_o the_o venetian_a 230._o doctor_n have_v prove_v out_o of_o caietan_n turrecremata_fw-la and_o bellarmine_n now_o king_n henry_n do_v challenge_v no_o jurisdiction_n but_o over_o his_o own_o subject_n and_o within_o his_o own_o dominion_n yet_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o in_o his_o own_o necessary_a defence_n he_o shall_v remove_v papal_a injury_n by_o provide_v as_o it_o become_v a_o virtuous_a prince_n for_o the_o quiet_a of_o his_o own_o conscience_n and_o the_o good_a of_o his_o subject_n which_o blessing_n can_v never_o have_v be_v procure_v if_o the_o pope_n have_v still_o enjoy_v his_o usurp_a authority_n in_o england_n phil._n you_o shall_v not_o persuade_v i_o but_o that_o king_n henry_n be_v guilty_a both_o of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n 3_o onuphrius_n say_v that_o paul_n the_o three_o do_v think_v he_o unworthy_a to_o be_v account_v in_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n ob_fw-la inauditum_fw-la heresis_fw-la crimen_fw-la that_o be_v for_o such_o a_o crime_n of_o heresy_n as_o have_v not_o be_v hear_v of_o orthod._n what_o mean_v the_o pope_n think_v you_o when_o he_o condemn_v he_o for_o heresy_n sigonius_n record_v that_o in_o a_o council_n at_o mentz_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n there_o be_v a_o disputation_n 1085._o utrum_fw-la henricus_fw-la regio_fw-la titulo_fw-la a_o gregorio_n spoliari_fw-la potuisset_fw-la that_o be_v whether_o henry_n the_o emperor_n may_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o title_n of_o a_o king_n by_o pope_n gregory_n wherein_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n assent_v to_o geberardus_fw-la defend_v the_o pope_n authority_n so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o vecilo_n archbishop_n of_o mentz_n be_v of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v brand_v for_o heresy_n in_o a_o other_o council_n wherein_o otho_n bishop_n of_o ostia_n the_o pope_n legate_n be_v present_a and_o the_o same_o 1105._o sigonius_n say_v that_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o renounce_v his_o father_n heresy_n do_v embrace_v the_o obedience_n of_o the_o pope_n not_o to_o perform_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v his_o father_n heresy_n but_o his_o son_n be_v a_o gracious_a catholic_a for_o show_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n though_o therein_o he_o be_v a_o ungracious_a son_n against_o his_o own_o father_n phil._n onuphrius_n 7._o say_v that_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o follow_v nova_fw-la &_o nefaria_fw-la lutheri_fw-la dogmata_fw-la the_o new_a and_o wicked_a opinion_n of_o luther_n 7._o bellarmine_n say_v that_o in_o england_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o edward_n the_o whole_a kingdom_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n slide_v back_o from_o the_o faith_n orthod._n that_o which_o you_o call_v heresy_n and_o apostasy_n be_v true_a religion_n and_o that_o which_o you_o honour_v with_o the_o name_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v full_a of_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n many_o papal_a abuse_n be_v discover_v in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n henry_n more_o in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n edward_n so_o the_o gospel_n be_v like_a to_o the_o light_n which_o shine_v more_o and_o more_o to_o the_o perfect_a day_n the_o brightness_n whereof_o abolish_v both_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o popish_a religion_n afterwards_o when_o queen_n mary_n have_v restore_v both_o the_o lord_n stir_v up_o the_o spirit_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n who_o with_o a_o invincible_a courage_n reform_v religion_n and_o that_o which_o she_o happy_o begin_v our_o gracious_a sovereign_a king_n james_n have_v happy_o continue_v neither_o can_v any_o man_n accuse_v they_o of_o schism_n unless_o they_o will_v accuse_v the_o holy_a apostle_n saint_n paul_n who_o 9_o when_o certain_a be_v harden_v and_o disobey_v speak_v evil_a of_o the_o way_n of_o god_n before_o the_o multitude_n he_o depart_v from_o they_o and_o separate_v the_o disciple_n as_o the_o apostle_n practise_v this_o in_o his_o own_o person_n so_o he_o give_v the_o like_a commandment_n to_o other_o 5._o if_o any_o man_n teach_v otherwise_o and_o consent_v not_o to_o the_o wholesome_a word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v according_a to_o godliness_n etc._n etc._n from_o such_o separate_a thyself_o and_o the_o lord_n cry_v by_o his_o prophet_n 15_o go_v not_o up_o to_o bethaven_n this_o bethaven_n be_v bethel_n but_o her_o idolatry_n make_v she_o bethaven_n therefore_o go_v not_o up_o to_o bethaven_n if_o rome_n which_o be_v sometime_o bethel_n the_o house_n of_o god_n become_v bethaven_n the_o house_n of_o vanity_n then_o thou_o must_v not_o go_v up_o to_o bethaven_n 4_o go_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n go_v out_o of_o babylon_n if_o rome_n which_o be_v some_o time_n a_o pure_a virgin_n become_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n then_o go_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n lest_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o her_o plague_n wherefore_o all_o christian_a kingdom_n be_v bind_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o erroneous_a and_o idolatrous_a church_n of_o rome_n phil._n thus_o you_o say_v but_o i_o rather_o account_v of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o note_v both_o they_o and_o you_o for_o schismatickes_n and_o heretic_n chap._n ix_o whether_o schism_n and_o heresy_n annihilate_v a_o consecration_n ortho_n whether_o we_o or_o you_o be_v guilty_a of_o those_o crime_n god_n the_o righteous_a judge_n will_v one_o day_n reveal_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o admit_v though_o for_o all_o your_o brag_n you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o prove_v it_o that_o cranmer_n upon_o his_o revolt_n from_o the_o pope_n do_v present_o become_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o heretic_n yet_o tell_v i_o in_o good_a sooth_n philodox_n do_v a_o bishop_n fall_v into_o schism_n and_o heresy_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n do_v he_o loose_v his_o power_n of_o give_v order_n phil._n it_o be_v a_o disputable_a point_n and_o i_o can_v tell_v you_o that_o great_a clerk_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n pope_n igitur_fw-la innocent_a say_v that_o those_o which_o be_v baptise_a of_o heretic_n be_v receive_v with_o their_o baptism_n but_o the_o ordain_v of_o heretic_n be_v not_o receive_v with_o their_o order_n and_o again_o the_o 581._o ordain_v of_o heretic_n have_v their_o head_n wound_v and_o again_o it_o ibidem_fw-la be_v affirm_v that_o he_o which_o have_v lose_v the_o honour_n can_v give_v the_o honour_n and_o that_o he_o which_o receive_v receive_v nothing_o because_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o giver_n which_o he_o can_v receive_v which_o he_o seal_v up_o with_o this_o conclusion_n aquiescimus_fw-la &_o verum_fw-la est_fw-la we_o yield_v and_o it_o be_v true_a pope_n john_n the_o twelve_o cause_v those_o which_o be_v ordain_v of_o leo_n 8._o a_o schismatical_a pope_n to_o say_v ●066_n pater_fw-la meus_fw-la nihil_fw-la habuit_fw-la sibi_fw-la nihil_fw-la mihi_fw-la dedit_fw-la that_o be_v my_o father_n have_v nothing_o to_o himself_o and_o nothing_o he_o give_v to_o i_o pope_n nicolas_n the_o first_o say_v 699._o no_o reason_n do_v teach_v how_o gregory_n who_o be_v canonical_o and_o synodical_o depose_v and_o excommunicate_v can_v promote_v or_o bless_v any_o man_n therefore_o photius_n receive_v nothing_o of_o gregory_n but_o that_o which_o he_o have_v but_o he_o have_v nothing_o he_o therefore_o give_v nothing_o he_o which_o stop_v his_o ear_n from_o hear_v the_o law_n his_o prayer_n shall_v be_v abominable_a if_o abominable_a than_o not_o to_o be_v hear_v if_o not_o to_o be_v hear_v then_o uneffectual_a if_o uneffectual_a then_o very_o it_o bring_v nothing_o to_o photius_n wherefore_o though_o cranmer_n have_v a_o lawful_a consecration_n yet_o it_o seem_v when_o he_o fall_v into_o schism_n and_o heresy_n he_o lose_v his_o order_n and_o power_n of_o ordination_n therefore_o the_o bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n consecrate_v by_o cranmer_n receive_v nothing_o because_o cranmer_n have_v nothing_o to_o give_v and_o the_o bishop_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n consecrate_v by_o those_o who_o cranmer_n do_v consecrate_v receive_v nothing_o because_o their_o consecrator_n have_v nothing_o to_o give_v and_o those_o which_o now_o succeed_v they_o receive_v nothing_o because_o their_o predecessor_n have_v nothing_o to_o give_v ortho_n take_v heed_n philodox_n lest_o while_o you_o go_v about_o to_o put_v out_o our_o eye_n you_o put_v out_o your_o own_o for_o if_o your_o allegation_n be_v sound_a what_o shall_v become_v of_o bonner_n bishop_n of_o london_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o